Selected quad for the lemma: faith_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
faith_n fundamental_a point_n protestant_n 5,493 5 9.7792 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A61864 Presbyteries triall, or, The occasion and motives of conversion to the Catholique faith of a person of quality in Scotland ; to which is svbioyned, A little tovch-stone of the Presbyterian covenant W. S. (William Stuart), d. 1677.; W. S. (William Stuart), d. 1677. A little tovch-stone of the Scottish Covenant. 1657 (1657) Wing S6028; ESTC R26948 309,680 599

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

be_v visible_a before_o luther_n which_o we_o shall_v short_o run_v over_o chap._n xxvii_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o visible_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o the_o holy_a father_n nor_o thereafter_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v very_o ordinary_a for_o the_o old_a protestant_n of_o the_o late_a english_a church_n to_o allege_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v of_o their_o religion_n and_o that_o their_o church_n be_v conform_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o which_o matter_n m._n jewel_n appeal_v to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o 6._o hundred_o year_n be_v very_o famous_a but_o that_o pretence_n be_v idle_a in_o regard_n of_o our_o present_a question_n 2._o it_o be_v false_a first_o it_o be_v idle_a because_o be_v it_o true_a as_o we_o shall_v see_v it_o to_o be_v most_o false_a that_o these_o father_n of_o the_o first_o 5._o or_o 6._o hundred_o year_n be_v protestant_n yet_o can_v not_o that_o suffice_v to_o prove_v they_o a_o continue_a succession_n of_o 1600._o year_n for_o i_o inquire_v what_o become_v of_o the_o protestant_a church_n after_o the_o father_n to_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n do_v it_o perish_v or_o not_o if_o it_o perish_v than_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n which_o must_v be_v perpetual_a according_a to_o the_o first_o undeniable_a principle_n above_o settle_a if_o the_o protestant_a church_n do_v not_o perish_v but_o remain_v visible_a for_o 900._o year_n between_o the_o father_n &_o luther_n then_o the_o question_n remain_v where_o be_v it_o in_o what_o kingdom_n province_n or_o city_n which-can_a never_o be_v show_v yea_o some_o famous_a protestant_n do_v acknowledge_v whit_n pe●kins_n expos_fw-fr symbol_n p._n 266._o whit_n that_o all_o that_o time_n the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v therefore_o although_o the_o father_n be_v grant_v to_o have_v be_v protestant_n the_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v continue_v by_o they_o after_o their_o time_n second_o its_o most_o false_a that_o the_o father_n be_v protestant_n 1._o because_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o six_o age_n must_v needs_o know_v better_o what_o be_v the_o religion_n and_o tenet_n of_o they_o who_o live_v in_o the_o five_o age_n by_o who_o they_o be_v instruct_v and_o with_o who_o they_o converse_v the_o n_o protestant_n can_v do_v now_o but_o these_o christian_n have_v protest_v on_o their_o salvation_n that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o they_o receive_v from_o they_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n therefore_o if_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o six_o age_n be_v not_o protestant_n neither_o be_v the_o father_n and_o christian_n of_o the_o 5._o age_n protestant_n and_o so_o you_o may_v go_v upward_o even_o to_o the_o apostle_n this_o reason_n shall_v be_v more_o clear_v hereafter_o 2._o it_o may_v be_v know_v that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o protestant_n by_o the_o point_n already_o examine_v for_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v justification_n by_o faith_n only_o the_o impossibility_n of_o keep_v the_o commandment_n they_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o necessity_n &_o effect_n of_o baptism_n they_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n which_o be_v principal_a article_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n but_o teach_v the_o quite_o contrary_a as_o have_v be_v see_v therefore_o according_a to_o the_o second_o principle_n above_o settle_a they_o be_v not_o protestant_n 3._o not_o to_o descend_v to_o particular_a doctrine_n this_o same_o truth_n may_v be_v show_v by_o the_o little_a account_n protestant_n make_v of_o the_o father_n who_o they_o will_v high_o esteem_v if_o they_o make_v for_o they_o and_o in_o a_o word_n by_o the_o open_a confession_n of_o the_o chief_a protestant_n that_o the_o father_n be_v against_o they_o in_o many_o thing_n luther_n as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o little_a after_o cup_n speak_v very_o intemperate_o of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o writing_n say_v he_o of_o hierome_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o true_a faith_n patrib_n luth._o in_o colloq_fw-la c._n de_fw-fr patrib_n or_o sound_a religion_n of_o chrysostome_n i_o make_v do_v account_n basil_n be_v of_o no_o worth_n he_o be_v whole_o a_o monk_n i_o weigh_v he_o not_o a_o hair_n cyprian_n be_v a_o weak_a divine_a etc._n etc._n 2_o idom_n de_fw-fr seruo_fw-la arbitr_n cap._n 2_o and_o general_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v if_o the_o father_n have_v be_v protestant's_n luther_n have_v not_o so_o underva_fw-mi ve_v they_o nor_o disclaim_v their_o authority_n calvin_n also_o ingenuous_o confess_v that_o the_o father_n be_v against_o he_o in_o many_o point_n 10._o call_z inst_z lib._n 3._o cap_n 5_o sect_n 10._o it_o be_v a_o custom_n say_v he_o about_o 1300_o year_n ago_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o all_o of_o that_o time_n i_o confess_v be_v carry_v away_o into_o error_n he_o grant_v also_o that_o the_o father_n teach_v satisfaction_n free_a will_n merit_n fast_v in_o lent_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o whitaker_n confirm_v voto_fw-la whit_n cont_n 2_o q._n 5_o c._n 7._o &_o li._n 6._o e●nt_fw-la durieum_fw-la p._n mar._n de_fw-fr voto_fw-la it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o what_o calvin_n &_o the_o centurist_n have_v write_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v err_v in_o many_o thing_n as_o touch_v limb_n free_a will_n merit_n of_o work_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o he_o say_v the_o popish_a religion_n be_v patch_v up_o of_o the_o father_n error_n peter_n martyr_n accord_v to_o he_o so_o long_o say_v he_o as_o we_o stand_v to_o the_o counsel_n and_o father_n we_o shall_v remain_v always_o in_o the_o same_o error_n an_o other_o famous_a protestant_n say_v more_o clear_o if_o that_o be_v true_a 1._o duditius_n ap_fw-mi bezam_n epist_n 1._o which_o the_o father_n have_v profess_v by_o mutual_a consent_n it_o be_v altogether_o on_o the_o papist_n side_n this_o open_a confession_n of_o the_o protestant_n chief_a reformer_n and_o best_a scholar_n show_v evident_o that_o the_o holy_a father_n be_v not_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o the_o presbyterian_o who_o disclaim_v the_o holy_a father_n &_o yield_v they_o to_o the_o papist_n be_v much_o more_o sincere_a &_o ingenuous_a in_o this_o matter_n than_o the_o late_a english_a protestant_n who_o lay_v claim_v to_o the_o father_n &_o deceitful_o make_v the_o people_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v protestant_n which_o they_o be_v enforce_v to_o deny_v when_o they_o be_v deal_v with_o scholar_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o former_a testimony_n by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a that_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o the_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v show_v to_o be_v visible_a in_o they_o much_o less_o can_v the_o visibility_n of_o it_o be_v continue_v after_o they_o wherefore_o we_o must_v go_v and_o seek_v out_o this_o visible_a protestant_a church_n else_o where_o for_o here_o it_o can_v be_v see_v the_o last_o valiant_a attempt_n be_v make_v by_o some_o famous_a protestant_n who_o after_o they_o have_v see_v that_o all_o their_o neighbour_n and_o predecessor_n have_v weary_v themselves_o in_o vain_a by_o travail_v all_o the_o world_n over_o to_o find_v out_o a_o visible_a protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n which_o can_v not_o be_v find_v have_v in_o end_n their_o recourse_n unto_o the_o popish_a church_n as_o unto_o a_o city_n of_o refuge_n in_o this_o great_a straight_o they_o teach_v two_o thing_n 1._o that_o the_o roman_a &_o protestant_a church_n be_v all_o one_o church_n as_o agre_v in_o all_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n although_o they_o disagree_v in_o not_o fundamental_o and_o by_o this_o distinction_n they_o think_v to_o answer_v easy_o that_o hard_a question_n where_o be_v your_o church_n before_o luther_n to_o wit_n they_o say_v it_o be_v the_o ve_fw-la y_o same_o with_o the_o roman_a which_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n keep_v all_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n albeit_o she_o have_v some_o error_n not_o fundamental_a which_o do_v not_o destroy_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o make_v it_o si_fw-mi k_n and_o weak_a and_o so_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o think_v to_o avoid_v all_o the_o inconvenience_n into_o which_o other_o protestant_n do_v fall_v for_o hereby_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o perish_v nor_o be_v invisible_a nor_o be_v only_o visible_a for_o a_o time_n but_o be_v perpetual_o visible_a 2._o they_o deny_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n make_v any_o real_a substantial_a separa_fw-la ion_n from_o the_o roman_a and_o affirm_v that_o all_o which_o they_o do_v be_v only_o to_o free_v themselves_o of_o some_o error_n which_o as_o sickness_n though_o not_o in_o themselves_o mortal_a have_v creep_v in_o upon_o the_o roman_a ch●rch_n which_o be_v often_o
the_o three_o but_o can_v not_o obtain_v it_o last_o they_o maintain_v diverse_a gross_a error_n which_o be_v condemn_v both_o by_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n 4._o ibidem_fw-la subdivis_fw-la 4._o as_o 1._o that_o churchman_n by_o mortal_a sin_n lose_v all_o spiritual_a authority_n 2._o that_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n by_o mortal_a sin_n fall_v also_o from_o their_o dignity_n 3._o that_o churchman_n shall_v possess_v nothing_o in_o property_n 4._o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o dissemble_v in_o religion_n and_o their_o practice_n be_v conform_v to_o their_o doctrine_n for_o they_o go_v to_o mass_n confess_v and_o communicate_v for_o which_o dissimulation_n the_o protestant_n at_o the_o beginnine_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v they_o for_o their_o brethren_n these_o and_o other_o gross_a error_n they_o maintain_v as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o protestant_n apology_n where_o the_o author_n be_v at_o large_a cite_v but_o as_o these_o difference_n do_v show_v the_o waldenses_n not_o to_o be_v good_a protestant_n so_o i_o will_v bring_v some_o few_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v ill_a presbyterian_o ibid._n gualte_n chron._n saeculo_fw-la 12._o c._n de_fw-fr walden_n o_o 2d_o &_o 32._o 3._o error_n 38._o ibid._n 1._o they_o admit_v no_o other_o form_n of_o prayer_n except_o our_o lord_n prayer_n the_o presbyterian_o admit_v many_o other_o but_o not_o that_o 2._o they_o allow_v only_o three_o order_n in_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n of_o deacon_n priest_n &_o bishop_n the_o presbyterian_o have_v abjure_v episcopacy_n &_o the_o whole_a hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n 3_o the_o waldenses_n affirm_v that_o all_o oath_n be_v unlawful_a the_o presbyterian_o have_v take_v n_o and_o enforce_v other_o to_o take_v many_o unlawful_a oath_n in_o the_o covenant_n 4._o the_o waldenses_n maintain_v ibi_fw-la 4._o error_n 40._o ibi_fw-la that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o put_v any_o man_n to_o death_n hy_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o judge_n and_o therefore_o they_o abolish_v all_o judicatories_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o blood_n the_o covenanter_n have_v shed_v much_o blood_n under_o pretence_n of_o justice_n spare_v none_o of_o their_o opposer_n who_o come_v in_o their_o reverence_n ibid._n 5._o error_n 31._o ibid._n 5._o they_o consecrate_v ordinary_o their_o sacrament_n upon_o that_o day_n only_o whereon_o our_o saviour_n be_v betray_v and_o they_o keep_v it_o thus_o consecrate_a all_o the_o year_n long_o to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o sick_a the_o presbyterian_o do_v not_o profess_v to_o consecrate_v at_o all_o they_o give_v their_o sacrament_n very_o seldom_o to_o the_o whole_a and_o they_o have_v make_v a_o act_n never_o to_o give_v it_o to_o the_o sick_a i_o can_v find_v hardly_o any_o thing_n wherein_o the_o waldenses_n agree_v more_o with_o the_o presbyterian_o then_o with_o other_o protestant_n 37._o error_n 37._o except_o in_o this_o alone_a that_o they_o contemn_v the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o the_o presbyterian_o have_v more_o then_o probable_o do_v by_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v apostolical_a by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o waldenses_n do_v not_o continue_v since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o the_o time_n they_o arise_v they_o be_v not_o protestant_n much_o less_o presbyterian_o and_o so_o be_v deficient_a in_o both_o the_o principle_n 730._o fox_n acts._n pag._n 41._o illyric_n in_o catalogue_n test_n p._n 730._o therefore_o m_o fox_n illyricus_n and_o other_o protestant_n have_v their_o recourse_n very_o groundless_o to_o the_o waldenses_n to_o prove_v the_o continual_a visibility_n of_o their_o church_n by_o they_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o must_v leave_v they_o &_o pass_v to_o the_o albigenses_n albigenses_n these_o man_n have_v their_o name_n from_o the_o town_n of_o albingia_n in_o france_n where_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o remain_v they_o begin_v in_o the_o same_o age_n with_o the_o waldenses_n and_o be_v a_o branch_n of_o their_o sect_n 332._o osiand_n cent._n 13_o l._n 1._o c._n 4._o fulk_n de_fw-fr success_n eccles_n pa._n 332._o as_o osiander_n &_o fulk_n do_v confess_v their_o late_a rise_n show_v that_o they_o have_v not_o continue_v since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o first_o principle_n and_o consequent_o albeit_o they_o have_v be_v protestant_n the_o protestant_a church_n can_v not_o be_v show_v continual_o visible_a in_o they_o they_o be_v also_o deficient_a in_o the_o second_o principle_n because_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v any_o protestant_a confession_n for_o they_o hold_v the_o same_o doctrine_n with_o the_o waldenses_n gualt_n baron_fw-fr anno_o 1176._o 1._o prateol_n saunder_n ap_fw-mi gualther_n error_n 2._o 2._o error_n 28._o ibid._n 3._o error_n 10._o apud_fw-la gualt_n except_o some_o few_o thing_n which_o they_o add_v of_o their_o own_o as_o 1._o they_o maintain_v with_o the_o manichee_n that_o there_o be_v two_o beginning_n to_o wit_n god_n and_o the_o devil_n 2._o with_o the_o saducee_n they_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n 3._o with_o the_o manichee_n seleucians_n and_o other_o ancient_a heretic_n they_o reject_v baptism_n and_o maintain_v many_o other_o error_n which_o be_v condemn_v both_o by_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n and_o they_o commit_v some_o abominable_a and_o profane_a villainy_n in_o the_o church_n of_o tolouse_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o albeit_o some_o protestant_n do_v seek_v to_o perpetual_a their_o church_n by_o they_o yet_o other_o do_v clear_o reject_v they_o jewel_n say_v plain_o 48._o jewel_n in_o defenfione_n apol._n p._n 48._o non_fw-la sunt_fw-la nostri_fw-la they_o be_v not_o we_o and_o osiander_n reject_v they_o more_o clear_o their_o doctrine_n say_v he_o be_v absurd_a impious_a heretical_a they_o remain_v obstinate_o in_o their_o error_n and_o impiety_n whence_o man_n think_v that_o they_o have_v be_v possess_v with_o anabaptistical_n fury_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o these_o gross_a error_n which_o they_o maintain_v and_o their_o great_a difference_n from_o protestant_n m._n fox_n reckon_v the_o albigenses_n in_o the_o number_n of_o protestant_a martyr_n and_o some_o other_o protestant_n supra_fw-la spark_n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la joan._n de_fw-fr albins_n pag._n 58._o fulk_n p._n 332._o ut_fw-la supra_fw-la as_o m._n spark_n &_o fulk_n do_v very_o gtoundles_o pretend_v to_o show_v the_o visibility_n of_o their_o church_n by_o they_o but_o see_v the_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v continue_v neither_o in_o the_o waldenses_n nor_o albigenses_n in_o france_n we_o must_v pass_v next_o to_o the_o wiclefist_n in_o england_n wiclefist_n 85._o fox_n act_n &_o monum_fw-la p._n 85._o john_n wicleff_n a_o english_a man_n be_v a_o roman_a priest_n and_o a_o curate_n in_o england_n he_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 1371._o as_o m._n fox_n testify_v and_o from_o he_o begin_v the_o church_n of_o the_o wiclefist_n for_o there_o be_v none_o or_o that_o religion_n before_o himself_o all_o the_o world_n say_v m._n fox_n be_v cover_v with_o thick_a darkness_n when_o wicleff_n like_o the_o morning_n flarre_n do_v shine_v out_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o cloud_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o the_o wiclefist_n which_o begin_v so_o long_o after_o the_o apostle_n can_v be_v the_o perpetual_a church_n which_o we_o be_v seek_v 2._o the_o wiclefist_n be_v not_o protestant_n because_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v any_o protestant_a confession_n of_o faith_n yea_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o protestant_a faith_n to_o wit_n justification_n by_o faith_n only_o for_o melanchton_n say_v of_o wiclef_n miconium_n melanc_fw-fr epist_n ad_fw-la miconium_n true_o he_o neither_o understand_v nor_o hold_v the_o justice_n of_o faith_n 3._o he_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n in_o many_o other_o point_n against_o protestant_n as_o in_o the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n veneration_n of_o image_n the_o rite_n &_o ceremony_n of_o mass_n extreme_a unction_n &_o all_o the_o 7._o sacrament_n 8._o protest_v apol._n tract_n 2._o c._n sect_n 4._o council_n consta._n cap._n 8._o as_o breir_o show_v out_o of_o his_o own_o work_n last_o he_o maintain_v diverse_a gross_a error_n condemn_v both_o by_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n as_o that_o all_o thing_n fall_v out_o by_o a_o absolute_a and_o fatal_a necessity_n that_o god_n ought_v to_o obey_v the_o devil_n as_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n do_v testify_v upon_o which_o word_n his_o disciple_n make_v many_o violent_a &_o intricate_a gloss_n which_o may_v be_v see_v examine_v in_o d._n stratfords_n disputation_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o d._n s._n disp_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o sect_n 3._o he_o hold_v also_o that_o church_n man_n in_o mortal_a sin_n do_v not_o baptize_v nor_o confer_v order_n that_o prince_n &_o magistrate_n fall_v from_o their_o dignity_n &_o power_n by_o mortal_a sin_n that_o churchman_n ought_v not_o to_o enjoy_v any_o temporal_a thing_n but_o shall_v
advertise_v of_o her_o malady_n and_o desire_v to_o cure_v they_o will_v admit_v no_o medicine_n which_o the_o protestant_n take_v at_o length_n in_o a_o cup_n of_o reformation_n do_v purge_v themselves_o of_o all_o infirmity_n and_o thereby_o their_o church_n be_v render_v whole_a and_o sound_a so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o difference_n between_o the_o roman_a &_o protestant_a church_n then_o between_o the_o same_o man_n whole_a &_o sick_a who_o by_o health_n and_o sickness_n be_v not_o substantial_o different_a but_o remain_v still_o the_o same_o man_n the_o protestant_n who_o follow_v this_o course_n be_v famous_a in_o their_o own_o generation_n and_o much_o cry_v up_o for_o learning_n &_o prudence_n as_o hooker_n the_o bishop_n of_o spalleto_n feild_n bunny_n potter_n chilingworth_n and_o diverse_a other_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o b._n of_o calcedon_n treatise_n of_o fundamental_a point_n and_o in_o the_o protestant_n apology_n i_o shall_v content_v myself_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o m._n bunny_n who_o write_v thus_o 108._o bunny_n tract_n de_fw-fr pacification_n sect_n 18._o p._n 108._o no_o question_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v for_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n for_o we_o make_v not_o a_o distinct_a church_n from_o they_o nor_o they_o from_o us._n there_o be_v therefore_o no_o separation_n make_v from_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v any_o of_o we_o go_v out_o from_o they_o the_o only_a question_n may_v be_v which_o of_o we_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v the_o more_o wholesome_a member_n of_o the_o church_n we_o or_o they_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o question_n approve_v by_o us._n yea_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o unless_o this_o answer_n be_v make_v the_o papist_n have_v great_a advantage_n in_o their_o old_a question_n see_v the_o protestant_n can_v show_v a_o church_n distinct_a from_o the_o roman_a before_o luther_n but_o this_o answer_n of_o these_o late_a author_n be_v as_o false_a and_o insufficient_a as_o any_o of_o the_o former_a first_o it_o direct_o contradict_v the_o d_o ctrine_n &_o practice_n of_o their_o reformer_n who_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v heavenly_a apostle_n for_o they_o accuse_v the_o roman_a church_n of_o idolatry_n superstition_n and_o diverse_a gross_a fundamental_a error_n which_o make_v not_o a_o church_n to_o be_v only_o sick_a but_o also_o kill_v and_o destroy_v it_o and_o as_o the_o presbyterian_o speak_v make_v it_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n become_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n &_o antichrist_n then_o for_o separation_n 〈◊〉_d first_o reformer_n be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v it_o that_o they_o invite_v all_o person_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o they_o call_v spiritu●l_a babylon_n and_o according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n their_o practice_n follow_v therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o first_o reformer_n do_v not_o think_v the_o roman_a and_o protestant_a church_n all_o one_o in_o fundamental_o neither_o do_v they_o deny_v separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o rather_o the_o quite_o contrary_a be_v most_o clear_a and_o certain_a second_o diverse_a other_o famous_a protestant_n condemn_v this_o new_a opinion_n as_o in_o ious_a for_o m._n perkins_n write_v thus_o 3._o perk._n in_o c._n 8._o ad_fw-la galat._n v._n 9_o whita_n count_v 2._o quaest_n 6._o c._n 3._o the_o politician_n who_o be_v of_o no_o religion_n say_v hat_n we_o and_o the_o papist_n differ_v not_o in_o substance_n and_o whiteker_n say_v plain_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v take_v away_o many_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o corrupt_a faith_n in_o the_o principal_a part_n all_o the_o o●her_n late_a protestant_n and_o especial_o the_o presbyterian_o condemn_v the_o same_o opinion_n for_o nothing_o almost_o can_v incense_v they_o m_o re_fw-mi then_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_n make_v not_o separation_n from_o she_o hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o m._n hooker_n be_v sharp_o reprove_v for_o this_o device_n by_o the_o puritan_n in_o their_o christian_a letter_n three_o beside_o all_o these_o confusion_n &_o contradiction_n among_o themselves_o the_o answer_n in_o itself_o be_v false_a &_o insufficient_a for_o when_o we_o be_v seek_v a_o protestant_n visible_a church_n before_o luther_n these_o man_n show_v we_o the_o popish_a church_n and_o albeit_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o papist_n be_v not_o protestant_n yet_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o popish_a and_o protestant_n church_n be_v all_o one_o &_o differ_v not_o substantial_o which_o be_v a_o double_a deceit_n first_o ●o_o show_v one_o thing_n very_o different_a for_o another_o and_o then_o to_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v both_o one_o but_o i_o conceive_v it_o can_v hardly_o enter_v into_o a_o man_n imagination_n unless_o it_o be_v trouble_v to_o think_v that_o these_o church_n be_v substantial_o one_o which_o differ_v and_o be_v clear_o opposite_a in_o the_o principal_a substantial_a point_n of_o religion_n as_o in_o sacrifice_n sacrament_n the_o observation_n of_o the_o divine_a commandment_n justify_v faith_n good_a work_n and_o many_o other_o particular_n the_o one_o church_n approve_v external_n sacrifice_n as_o a_o most_o acceptable_a service_n and_o worship_v due_a to_o god_n and_o offer_v up_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n as_o the_o most_o excellent_a of_o all_o sacrifice_n and_o adore_v it_o as_o god_n the_o other_o have_v no_o sacrifice_n at_o all_o but_o condemn_v that_o as_o great_a abomination_n &_o gross_a idolatry_n which_o the_o first_o make_v the_o great_a object_n and_o exercise_v of_o its_o piety_n this_o difference_n alone_o albeit_o we_o speak_v of_o no_o more_o be_v so_o great_a that_o m._n dally_v a_o renown_a min_n stir_v in_o france_n do_v affirm_v in_o his_o apology_n which_o he_o write_v late_o for_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o be_v approve_v by_o his_o colleague_n the_o minister_n of_o charenton_n that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o justify_v the_o protestant_n separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o hinder_v their_o union_n again_o with_o it_o as_o be_v a_o most_o substantial_a and_o fundamental_a difference_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o ground_n whereon_o this_o answer_n be_v found_v to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v no_o fundamental_a difference_n between_o the_o catholic_a &_o protestant_a church_n be_v false_a both_o in_o it_o feel_v &_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o first_o reformer_n &_o of_o many_o other_o famous_a protestant_n but_o whither_o there_o be_v fundamental_a difference_n or_o not_o the_o answer_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o question_n still_o remain_v where_o be_v the_o protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n that_o be_v a_o church_n believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o a_o protestant_a confession_n whither_o some_o of_o they_o b_o called_z fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a or_o if_o they_o please_v of_o man_n hold_v all_o these_o article_n and_o esteem_v some_o of_o they_o fundamental_a and_o some_o not_z for_o we_o be_v now_o seek_v a_o protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n and_o according_a to_o the_o definition_n above_o settle_a such_o a_o church_n be_v a_o society_n believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o their_o confession_n therefore_o they_o must_v show_v we_o such_o a_o confession_n or_o else_o they_o do_v not_o show_v we_o a_o protestant_a church_n yea_o the_o point_n which_o they_o call_v not_o fundamental_a wherein_o they_o disagree_v from_o the_o papist_n be_v these_o which_o make_v they_o proper_o protestant_n if_o then_o they_o confess_v as_o they_o must_v do_v that_o no_o society_n can_v be_v have_v before_o luther_n which_o believe_v all_o these_o point_n which_o they_o call_v not_o fundamental_a they_o must_v also_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a protestant_n church_n before_o luther_n which_o be_v direct_o to_o succumb_v &_o fail_v in_o that_o which_o they_o undertake_v to_o show_v so_o that_o albeit_o this_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_o etc._n etc._n be_v admit_v as_o good_a &_o true_a whereas_o indeed_o in_o their_o sense_n it_o be_v false_a and_o deceitful_a as_o we_o shall_v see_v more_o clear_o hereafter_o yet_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o present_a question_n it_o will_v serve_v they_o to_o no_o purpose_n these_o reason_n be_v more_o than_o sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o this_o new_a answer_n be_v false_a and_o insufficient_a and_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o mere_a shift_n devise_v to_o elude_v the_o question_n and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v satisfactory_a to_o any_o man_n who_o be_v search_v for_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v condemn_v by_o famous_a protestant_n as_o f●lse_a and_o impious_a and_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n &_o practice_n of_o the_o first_o reformer_n this_o show_v clear_o the_o great_a straight_o &_o necessity_n whereunto_o such_o learned_a and_o prudent_a man_n be_v reduce_v in_o answer_v this_o hard_a question_n which_o
and_o among_o all_o doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v there_o be_v none_o descend_v more_o clear_o than_o the_o irrefragable_a testimony_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n either_o as_o she_o be_v dilate_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o as_o she_o be_v assemble_v in_o a_o general_n council_n whereof_o the_o continual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n be_v a_o superabundant_a evidence_n from_o this_o truth_n we_o will_v brief_o deduce_v some_o corollary_n 1._o since_o we_o neither_o aught_o nor_o can_v arrive_v unto_o the_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n doctrine_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o testimony_n be_v not_o only_o necessary_a for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o doctrine_n not_o write_v but_o also_o of_o these_o which_o be_v write_v because_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o these_o can_v be_v infallible_o know_v but_o by_o this_o lively_a rule_n of_o faith_n 2._o the_o doctrine_n not_o write_v which_o have_v be_v still_o believe_v and_o profess_v in_o the_o church_n be_v true_o apostolical_a &_o divine_a as_o well_o as_o these_o doctrine_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n because_o we_o have_v the_o same_o infallible_a assurance_n for_o they_o that_o we_o have_v for_o these_o 3._o since_o the_o testimony_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n by_o which_o we_o can_v be_v full_o assure_v what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v the_o formal_a motive_n of_o our_o belief_n it_o follow_v that_o what_o ever_o the_o church_n testify_v to_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n have_v be_v true_o reveal_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v believe_v whither_o the_o matter_n themselves_o be_v great_a or_o small_a and_o hereby_o the_o protestant_n distinction_n of_o point_n fundamental_a &_o not_o fundamental_a be_v quite_o overturn_v and_o show_v to_o be_v impertinent_a because_o neither_o of_o these_o point_n be_v believe_v for_o themselv'_v but_o for_o the_o divine_a authority_n reveal_v they_o and_o this_o can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n &_o by_o her_o authority_n propose_v they_o therefore_o the_o formal_a motive_n be_v the_o same_o for_o all_o point_n they_o be_v all_o alike_o to_o be_v believe_v when_o they_o be_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n sufficient_o propose_v and_o in_o that_o case_n to_o deny_v any_o thing_n albeit_o never_o so_o small_a for_o the_o matter_n be_v a_o fundamental_a error_n and_o clear_o opposite_a to_o the_o formal_a motive_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o which_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v believe_v and_o whosoever_o disbeleeve_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o so_o propose_v deny_v faith_n to_o god_n &_o reject_v his_o authority_n 4._o he_o who_o contemn_v or_o neglect_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v which_o be_v a_o testimony_n beyond_o all_o exception_n &_o most_o worthy_a of_o credit_n can_v never_o come_v to_o the_o full_a &_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o our_o saviour_n doctrine_n for_o that_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o step_n of_o the_o ladder_n upon_o which_o if_o one_o set_v not_o first_o his_o foot_n he_o can_v arrive_v unto_o the_o top_n that_o be_v unto_o the_o first_o age_n wherein_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n live_v 5._o from_o this_o principle_n flow_v all_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o first_o her_o unity_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o she_o have_v alway'_v believe_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v receive_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o father_n to_o son_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o all_o person_n within_o she_o submit_v to_o the_o same_o supreme_a authority_n of_o one_o chief_a pastor_n &_o of_o general_a counsel_n the_o church_n can_v but_o have_v unity_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n second_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n flow_v also_o from_o the_o foresay_a principle_n for_o if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a at_o the_o beginning_n as_o all_o christian_n must_v confess_v and_o the_o doctrine_n by_o this_o continual_a testimony_n remain_v ever_o the_o same_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v then_o the_o church_n be_v still_o holy_a in_o all_o her_o doctrine_n which_o all_o tend_v to_o holiness_n three_o the_o church_n be_v also_o catholic_n for_o it_o be_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o nation_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v infallible_o convey_v unto_o us._n last_o the_o church_n be_v apostolic_a for_o it_o be_v by_o her_o continue_a testimony_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v know_v in_o all_o generation_n and_o therefore_o she_o must_v have_v a_o continue_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v i_o hope_v that_o i_o have_v prove_v now_o sufficient_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n by_o receive_v all_o her_o doctrine_n in_o all_o age_n from_o her_o forefather_n have_v ever_o keep_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o she_o first_o receive_v from_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n &_o never_o change_v it_o and_o therefore_o as_o she_o be_v so_o she_o still_o be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o fruitful_a mother_n &_o yet_o a_o chaste_a virgin_n never_o part_v from_o christ_n for_o she_o can_v never_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o doctrine_n which_o she_o once_o receive_v from_o he_o neither_o by_o the_o bloody_a persecution_n of_o the_o pagan_n nor_o by_o the_o deceitful_a pretext_n and_o allurement_n of_o heretic_n yea_o she_o never_o do_v dissemble_v the_o least_o error_n in_o her_o dear_a child_n 3._o jude_n v._n 3._o but_o as_o s._n jude_n exhort_v have_v ever_o contend_v earnest_o for_o the_o faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n she_o have_v indeed_o be_v ever_o false_o accuse_v as_o a_o adulteress_n by_o all_o heresy_n which_o be_v themselves_o as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o harlot_n and_o strumpet_n but_o she_o remain_v pure_a &_o chaste_a adulterari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la 2.19_o cypr._n in_o tract_n de_fw-fr simplicitate_fw-la prelator_n osee_n 2.19_o say_v s._n cyprian_n sponsa_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v become_v a_o adulteress_n she_o be_v chaste_a &_o incorrupt_a what_o she_o once_o know_v of_o christ_n she_o still_o hold_v and_o never_o at_o all_o part_n from_o he_o as_o he_o never_o part_n from_o his_o church_n to_o which_o he_o say_v i_o will_v espouse_v thou_o to_o myself_o for_o ever_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o great_a love_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o church_n say_v that_o he_o deliver_v himself_o for_o it_o etc._n ephes_n 5.25_o etc._n etc._n that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v it_o and_o present_v it_o unto_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n etc._n etc._n and_o of_o the_o indissolvible_a conjunction_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n he_o say_v this_o be_v a_o great_a sacrament_n 32._o ibid._n v._o 32._o but_o i_o say_v in_o christ_n &_o his_o church_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v load_v our_o saviour_n with_o lie_n &_o calumny_n so_o all_o heretic_n strive_v to_o defame_v &_o oppress_v his_o spouse_n by_o the_o same_o mean_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o as_o the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n do_v appear_v and_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v fill_v with_o his_o praise_n whereas_o his_o enemy_n be_v clothe_v with_o shame_n &_o confusion_n be_v scatter_v through_o the_o earth_n have_v their_o temple_n destroy_v and_o their_o nation_n ruin_v so_o within_o a_o short_a time_n the_o unspotted_a innocency_n &_o purity_n of_o his_o spouse_n be_v manifest_v to_o the_o shame_n &_o confusion_n of_o all_o heresy_n which_o be_v accurse_v by_o the_o church_n with_o all_o their_o lie_n &_o calumny_n be_v ever_o at_o length_n destroy_v from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o as_o the_o wiseman_n have_v observe_v 11_o ecclesiastic_a c._n 3._o v._n 11_o the_o mother_n curse_n root_v up_o the_o foundation_n if_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n in_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o not_o only_o refuse_v to_o hear_v and_o obey_v christ_n but_o also_o false_o accuse_v he_o and_o many_o way_n lie_v and_o blaspheme_v against_o he_o it_o can_v be_v a_o small_a sin_n in_o heretic_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n for_o which_o crime_n alone_o they_o be_v by_o christ_n command_n to_o be_v hold_v as_o heathen_n &_o publican_n but_o also_o they_o false_o accuse_v his_o spouse_n which_o he_o love_v so_o dear_o for_o a_o adulteress_n and_o charge_v she_o with_o idolatry_n superstition_n &_o all_o sort_n of_o abomination_n these_o calumny_n if_o not_o blasphemy_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o their_o new_a doctrine_n &_o pretend_a reformation_n by_o which_o we_o may_v know_v the_o rare_a fabric_n
at_o last_o betwixt_o these_o two_o minister_n to_o make_v they_o abstain_v from_o their_o public_a and_o scandalous_a contradiction_n yet_o that_o concord_n do_v not_o last_o long_a their_o inward_a fire_n do_v short_o burst_v forth_o for_o one_o day_n after_o sermon_n the_o independent_a invite_v the_o people_n to_o his_o communion_n which_o he_o be_v to_o give_v the_o next_o sunday_n he_o be_v public_o interrupt_v by_o the_o presbyterian_a who_o accuse_v he_o of_o apostasy_n from_o the_o covenant_n and_o presbytery_n and_o strait_o charge_v the_o people_n to_o receive_v no_o communion_n from_o he_o and_o with_o this_o confusion_n the_o meeting_n end_v but_o the_o minister_n bawl_v continue_v a_o space_n thereafter_o the_o event_n do_v show_v that_o the_o presbyterian_a get_v the_o better_a of_o this_o conflict_n for_o the_o other_o do_v not_o appear_v at_o the_o day_n appoint_v to_o give_v the_o communion_n as_o he_o have_v promise_v yet_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o victory_n be_v much_o diminish_v by_o reason_n the_o other_o place_n be_v supply_v by_o his_o colleague_n who_o beside_o other_o have_v both_o the_o presbyterian_o daughter_n and_o son-in-law_n for_o two_o of_o his_o communicant_o i_o conceive_v that_o all_o these_o dissension_n and_o division_n do_v fall_v forth_o by_o divin_n providence_n to_o give_v people_n sufficient_a notice_n that_o a_o church_n of_o so_o great_a confusion_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o house_n of_o great_a order_n and_o unity_n and_o to_o show_v that_o these_o minister_n who_o be_v the_o ruler_n or_o rather_o m_n s-ruler_n of_o such_o a_o confuse_a church_n and_o who_o brag_n so_o much_o of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o himsef_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o giddiness_n and_o although_o sometime_o the_o minister_n to_o cover_v the_o ugly_a deformity_n and_o great_a scandal_n of_o all_o their_o dissension_n will_v pretend_v that_o their_o difference_n be_v not_o in_o fundamental_a point_n yet_o at_o other_o time_n their_o word_n do_v vary_v and_o their_o action_n contradict_v ever_o their_o word_n for_o they_o change_v their_o tongue_n as_o the_o diversity_n of_o question_n do_v trouble_v they_o or_o the_o interest_n of_o their_o cause_n do_v press_v they_o when_o they_o be_v not_o urge_v with_o their_o dissension_n then_o they_o cry_v up_o presbytery_n as_o the_o only_a sceptre_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a government_n of_o the_o church_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la the_o only_a mean_n to_o uphold_v christ_n kingdom_n and_o to_o hold_v out_o the_o wild_a boar_n of_o anti-christianity_n it_o be_v well_o know_v also_o how_o necessary_a and_o fundamental_a a_o point_n the_o covenant_n be_v esteem_v and_o how_o the_o minister_n put_v it_o very_o near_o in_o balance_n with_o the_o book_n of_o life_n but_o their_o action_n do_v show_v more_o sensible_o than_o their_o word_n that_o they_o esteem_v their_o dissension_n to_o be_v in_o substantial_a and_o fundamental_a matter_n or_o else_o they_o have_v be_v void_a not_o only_o of_o christian_a charity_n but_o also_o of_o humane_a discretion_n for_o how_o can_v they_o have_v embroil_v all_o these_o kingdom_n into_o so_o great_a confusion_n and_o bloodshed_n for_o such_o matter_n as_o themselves_o esteem_v only_o circumstantial_a and_o not_o substantial_a how_o can_v they_o with_o any_o discretion_n force_v these_o point_n of_o their_o now_o reformation_n which_o they_o think_v only_o ceremonial_a and_o not_o substantial_a so_o furious_o and_o substantial_o upon_o other_o but_o whither_o their_o difference_n be_v in_o fundamental_o or_o not_o for_o the_o matter_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o be_v substantial_a and_o fundamental_a for_o the_o manner_n to_o the_o substantial_a destruction_n of_o one_o and_o other_o and_o almost_o to_o the_o fundamental_a subversion_n of_o three_o kinhdome_n yea_o i_o find_v that_o the_o presbyterian_o in_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o king_n james_n time_n be_v more_o ingenuous_a and_o confess_v free_o that_o their_o difference_n from_o the_o english_a church_n be_v in_o weighty_a and_o substantial_a matter_n for_o thus_o they_o speak_v in_o m._n rogers_n 13._o m._n roger_n praefat_fw-la doct._n aug._n num_fw-la ●1_n &_o 13._o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o be_v not_o as_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o favourer_n will_v deceive_v the_o world_n concern_v corner_n cape_n surplice_n etc._n etc._n but_o of_o more_o weighty_a matter_n as_o of_o the_o true_a ministry_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o we_o contend_v with_o the_o formalist_n whither_o jesus_n christ_n ought_v to_o reign_n in_o this_o cause_n we_o ought_v so_o to_o oppose_v ever_o the_o conformist_n that_o if_o we_o have_v as_o many_o life_n as_o we_o have_v hair_n we_o ought_v rather_o to_o loose_v they_o all_o then_o to_o leave_v off_o our_o enterprise_n upon_o the_o other_o part_n the_o english_a church_n or_o the_o old_a protestant_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o they_o differ_v substantial_o from_o the_o presbyterian_o 67._o covell_n just_a d_o f._n art_n 11._o p._n 67._o this_o doctor_n covel_n plain_o protest_v in_o all_o their_o name_n lest_o any_o man_n say_v he_o shall_v think_v our_o contention_n with_o puritan_n be_v in_o small_a point_n and_o difference_n not_o great_a each_o side_n have_v charge_v one_o the_o other_o with_o heresy_n if_o not_o infidelity_n yea_o even_o with_o such_o as_o quite_o owerthrow_v the_o principal_a foundation_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n and_o albeit_o they_o will_v not_o confess_v their_o difference_n to_o be_v in_o fundamental_n yet_o it_o be_v evident_a they_o be_v so_o for_o what_o be_v more_o fundamental_a to_o a_o church_n than_o the_o government_n establish_v by_o christ_n what_o be_v more_o fundamental_a than_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n the_o apostle_n creed_n what_o more_o fundamental_a than_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o in_o all_o these_o they_o have_v tragical_a difference_n beside_o in_o many_o other_o point_n no_o less_o substantial_a although_o not_o so_o sensible_a as_o in_o predestination_n and_o reprobation_n universal_a grace_n whether_o god_n absolute_o decern_v or_o only_o permit_v sin_n whether_o the_o sacrament_n confer_v grace_n whither_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n whither_o christ_n redeem_v the_o world_n by_o shed_v his_o blood_n and_o corporal_a death_n or_o by_o suffer_v in_o his_o soul_n the_o pain_n of_o hell_n whither_o man_n after_o the_o fall_n have_v free_a will_n and_o many_o more_o which_o may_v be_v see_v collect_v in_o the_o protestant_n apology_n 10_o apol._n protest_v tract_n 2._o c._n 3._o sect_n 5_o sub_fw-la 2._o &_o 3._o ad_fw-la 10_o in_o all_o which_o the_o old_a protestant_n and_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v teach_v ooposite_a doctrine_n and_o accuse_v other_o of_o gross_a error_n and_o sometime_o of_o blasphemy_n have_v then_o diligent_o consider_v these_o thing_n i_o make_v this_o reflection_n with_o myself_o how_o can_v this_o scottish_a church_n which_o be_v like_o a_o babel_n of_o confusion_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o for_o order_n and_o unity_n aught_o to_o be_v like_a to_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n how_o can_v that_o church_n which_o be_v the_o unhappy_a root_n of_o so_o much_o dissension_n and_o division_n be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v no_o less_o the_o root_n of_o unity_n than_o it_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o verity_n i_o see_v that_o ever_o one_o sect_n beget_v a_o other_o which_o not_o only_o divide_v but_o strive_v also_o like_o viper_n brood_n to_o destroy_v the_o former_a such_o confusion_n and_o dissension_n become_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o be_v more_o proper_a for_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n if_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v know_v by_o her_o unity_n then_o the_o false_a church_n be_v no_o less_o but_o more_o easy_o discern_v by_o its_o dissension_n 7.16_o math._n 7.16_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o all_o false_a prophet_n who_o appear_v at_o first_o in_o sheep_n raiment_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n 149._o aug._n in_o psal_n 149._o and_o s._n augustin_n show_v that_o their_o fruit_n be_v dissension_n we_o seek_v say_v he_o among_o they_o the_o fruit_n of_o charity_n and_o we_o find_v the_o thorn_n of_o dissension_n if_o therefore_o we_o observe_v our_o saviour_n rule_n and_o judge_v the_o minister_n by_o their_o fruit_n we_o will_v soon_o find_v they_o not_o to_o be_v true_a prophet_n and_o their_o church_n wherein_o their_o be_v such_o dissension_n not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o rather_o a_o babel_n of_o confusion_n therefore_o i_o will_v endeavour_v by_o god_n assistance_n to_o seek_v out_o a_o church_n which_o have_v not_o only_a constancy_n but_o
scripture_n but_o also_o by_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n that_o he_o who_o be_v just_a &_o good_a can_v not_o command_v thing_n impossible_a 3._o that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v heavy_a to_o those_o who_o want_v the_o love_n of_o god_n but_o they_o be_v light_n to_o those_o who_o have_v it_o yea_o the_o same_o holy_a doctor_n show_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n paul_n that_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v obtain_v grace_n unto_o we_o whereby_o we_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o be_v before_o so_o hard_a &_o difficult_a 8.3.4_o rom_n 8.3.4_o thus_o speak_v s._n paul_n for_o that_o which_o be_v impossible_a to_o the_o law_n in_o that_o it_o be_v weaken_v by_o the_o flesh_n god_n send_v his_o son_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o sin_n &_o for_o sin_n condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v in_o we_o who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n 19_o aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr spi._n &_o light_v cap._n 19_o upon_o which_o word_n s._n augustin_n say_v the_o law_n be_v give_v that_o grace_n may_v be_v seek_v after_o and_o grace_n be_v give_v that_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v for_o not_o by_o any_o fault_n of_o the_o law_n the_o law_n be_v not_o fulfil_v but_o by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o fault_n be_v to_o be_v show_v by_o the_o law_n but_o to_o be_v cure_v by_o grace_n for_o that_o which_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o law_n etc._n etc._n s._n hierom_n bring_v the_o same_o place_n of_o ●_o paul_n against_o the_o pelagian_o to_o prove_v that_o man_n be_v not_o able_a by_o his_o own_o strength_n or_o free_a will_n ctesiphont_n hieren_fw-mi ad_fw-la ctesiphont_n but_o only_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o god_n behold_v there_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n affirm_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n not_o of_o their_o own_o head_n but_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o general_a belief_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n it_o be_v make_v appear_v unto_o i_o by_o the_o second_o arausican_n council_n celebrate_v about_o s._n augustins_n time_n 25._o araus_n council_n 2._o c._n 25._o which_o make_v this_o profession_n we_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n that_o by_o grace_n receive_v in_o baptism_n all_o such_o as_o be_v baptize_v christ_n help_v &_o cooperate_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o fulfil_v if_o they_o will_v labour_v faithful_o these_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o salvation_n so_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o ancient_a church_n believe_v this_o doctrine_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o my_o purpose_n this_o same_o truth_n be_v confirm_v by_o s._n augustin_n not_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o also_o by_o reason_n some_o one_o may_v say_v say_v he_o i_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n love_v my_o enemy_n to_o which_o he_o answer_v thus_o god_n say_v to_o thou_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n temp_n aug._n serm_n 61._o the_o temp_n that_o thou_o can_v consider_v now_o whether_o thou_o or_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o therefore_o since_o truth_n can_v lie_v let_v humane_a weakness_n forbear_v its_o vain_a excuse_n for_o he_o who_o be_v just_a can_v not_o command_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v impossible_a and_o he_o who_o be_v good_a will_v never_o condemn_v man_n for_o that_o which_o he_o can_v not_o avoid_v so_o that_o according_a to_o s._n augustin_n the_o presbyterian_o belief_n be_v not_o only_o against_o all_o the_o scripture_n although_o they_o pretend_v to_o believe_v nothing_o beside_o scripture_n but_o also_o against_o sound_a reason_n that_o be_v against_o both_o the_o justice_n &_o goodness_n of_o god_n celant_fw-la hieron_n epist_n ad_fw-la celant_fw-la s._n hierome_n also_o affirm_v that_o these_o who_o say_v that_o god_n have_v command_v any_o thing_n impossible_a pronounce_v god_n to_o be_v unjust_a moreover_o the_o same_o two_o most_o renown_a &_o holy_a father_n do_v not_o only_o teach_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n but_o also_o they_o censure_v the_o contrary_a that_o be_v the_o presbyterian_o opinion_n as_o blasphemy_n in_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o time_n we_o accurse_v say_v s._n augustin_n 17._o aug._n serm_n 191._o the_o temp_n execramur_fw-la eorum_fw-la blasphemiam_fw-la etc._n etc._n hier._n in_o symbol_n ep_v 17._o their_o blasphemy_n that_o affirm_v god_n command_v any_o thing_n impossible_a to_o man_n and_o that_o god_n commandment_n can_v be_v keep_v of_o any_o man_n in_o particular_a but_o of_o all_o man_n take_v together_o the_o same_o be_v repeat_v by_o s._n hierome_n so_o that_o these_o holy_a father_n do_v judge_v this_o error_n not_o only_o to_o be_v a_o heresy_n but_o also_o a_o blasphemy_n and_o yet_o these_o new_a reformer_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n most_o admirable_a &_o deplorable_a make_v such_o blasphemy_n the_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o they_o have_v also_o most_o tyrannical_o enforce_v other_o under_o pretext_n of_o give_v they_o only_o pure_a scripture_n to_o swear_v &_o believe_v such_o horrible_a error_n and_o blasphemy_n for_o divine_a truth_n but_o i_o find_v that_o some_o more_o prudent_a and_o conscientious_a protestant_n have_v abandon_v this_o wicked_a calvinisticall_a opinion_n yea_o and_o condemn_v it_o as_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v do_v for_o blasphemy_n mr_n shelford_n a_o minister_n in_o england_n have_v write_v a_o treatise_n express_o on_o this_o matter_n 147._o shelford_n p._n 147._o to_o prove_v the_o possibility_n of_o the_o law_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n where_o he_o censure_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n by_o the_o scripture_n &_o father_n &_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n james._n for_o this_o he_o speak_v king_n james_n upon_o the_o lord_n prayer_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o say_v that_o any_o of_o christ_n precept_n be_v impossible_a because_o this_o be_v to_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n who_o out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n tell_v we_o that_o his_o yoke_n be_v easy_a &_o his_o burden_n light_n and_o his_o inward_a disciple_n s._n ●n_o say_v his_o commandment_n be_v not_o grievous_a ●rom_o whence_o s._n basil_n the_o great_a aver_v impious_a it_o be_v to_o say_v the_o precept_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v impossible_a thus_o he_o behold_v 3._o bas_n hom_n 3._o what_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v esteem_v a_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n how_o a_o learned_a protestant_n who_o book_n come_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n 1635._o with_o great_a applause_n in_o cambridge_n and_o king_n james_n who_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v condemn_v as_o blasphemy_n &_o impiety_n &_o a_o give_v the_o lie_n to_o god_n i_o hear_v also_o that_o some_o of_o the_o new_a independent_a congregation_n in_o england_n do_v no_o less_o sharp_o condemn_v the_o same_o presbyterian_a opinion_n but_o beside_o all_o these_o press_a authority_n i_o find_v also_o some_o convince_a reason_n against_o the_o presbyterian_o which_o i_o will_v brief_o collect_v 1._o it_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o goodness_n and_o justice_n of_o a_o lawgiver_n such_o as_o god_n be_v to_o impose_v upon_o people_n law_n which_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v keep_v &_o then_o to_o punish_v they_o with_o loss_n of_o good_n and_o life_n for_o not_o observe_v these_o impossible_a law_n the_o great_a tyrant_n on_o earth_n do_v never_o arrive_v to_o that_o hight_v of_o impiety_n &_o cruelty_n therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n who_o be_v good_a &_o just_a shall_v commit_v such_o cruelty_n &_o injustice_n to_o this_o accord_v s._n augustin_n in_o his_o word_n above_o cite_v when_o he_o say_v temp_n aug._n ser_n 61._o the_o temp_n god_n can_v not_o command_v any_o thing_n impossible_a because_o he_o be_v just_a neither_o will_v he_o damn_v a_o man_n for_o that_o which_o he_o can_v not_o avoid_v because_o he_o be_v merciful_a yea_o these_o absurdity_n of_o injustice_n and_o cruelty_n will_v follow_v against_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n in_o how_o much_o the_o punishment_n he_o inflict_v be_v great_a then_o can_v be_v inflict_v by_o man_n although_o th●_n great_a tyrant_n on_o earth_n for_o what_o be_v the_o lo●●_n of_o temporal_a good_n and_o life_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o death_n both_o of_o soul_n &_o body_n in_o the_o eternal_a pain_n of_o hell_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o some_o protestant_n do_v detest_v the_o presbyterian_a doctrine_n as_o extreme_a blasphemy_n 2._o it_o do_v not_o only_o encroach_v upon_o the_o goodness_n &_o justice_n of_o god_n but_o also_o
as_o a_o man_n who_o be_v rich_a and_o have_v misspend_v his_o estate_n can_v be_v just_o command_v by_o any_o new_a law_n to_o pay_v as_o much_o tribute_n as_o when_o he_o have_v his_o estate_n nor_o be_v punish_v for_o not_o pay_v it_o thereafter_o for_o such_o a_o law_n will_v be_v both_o unjust_a &_o ridiculous_a command_a impossibility_n and_o so_o will_v be_v no_o law_n and_o the_o maker_n of_o it_o will_v be_v both_o unreasonable_a &_o cruel_a so_o man_n after_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n can_v not_o by_o any_o new_a law_n be_v just_o command_v by_o god_n to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v impossible_a unto_o he_o unless_o we_o will_v make_v that_o new_a law_n unjust_a and_o ridiculous_a &_o god_n himself_o unreasonable_a &_o tyrannous_a therefore_o since_o god_n make_v and_o promulgate_v his_o law_n long_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n use_v exhortation_n propound_a reward_n and_o threaten_a punishment_n to_o induce_v man_n to_o keep_v it_o and_o all_o his_o action_n be_v just_a and_o wise_a they_o presuppose_v necessary_o the_o possibility_n of_o keep_v that_o law_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o grace_n or_o else_o such_o thing_n will_v not_o be_v only_o against_o god_n goodness_n &_o justice_n but_o also_o against_o ordinary_a prudence_n moreover_o the_o same_o catholic_a show_v i_o that_o the_o presbyterian_o who_o accuse_v the_o catholic_n falsy_n for_o take_v away_o the_o second_o commandment_n as_o they_o call_v it_o of_o which_o matter_n we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v more_o fit_o hereafter_o may_v be_v just_o accuse_v for_o take_v away_o in_o reality_n not_o one_o but_o alle_fw-mi the_o commandment_n for_o their_o error_n of_o the_o impossibility_n of_o they_o destroy_v the_o end_n for_o which_o they_o and_o all_o just_a law_n be_v make_v to_o will_z t_z that_o they_o may_v be_v keep_v and_o so_o they_o destroy_v the_o whole_a divine_a commandment_n and_o make_v they_o of_o no_o effect_n yea_o this_o error_n destroy_v also_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n &_o passion_n if_o we_o will_v believe_v s._n augustin_n for_o have_v bring_v many_o passage_n of_o scripture_n to_o this_o purpose_n he_o subjoin_v quibus_fw-la appaparet_fw-la d._n jesum_fw-la christum_fw-la nullam_fw-la aliam_fw-la ob_fw-la causam_fw-la in_o carnem_fw-la venisse_fw-la etc._n etc._n 26._o aug._n lib_n 1_o de_fw-fr pecc_fw-la mer_o &_o rem_fw-la c._n 26._o where_o he_o show_v very_o large_o that_o christ_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n come_v unto_o the_o world_n and_o become_v obedient_a unto_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n but_o that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v sinner_n to_o god_n destroy_v the_o power_n of_o sin_n obtain_v grace_n from_o god_n to_o make_v we_o walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o in_o obedience_n of_o his_o holy_a commandment_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v see_v what_o a_o dangerous_a fundamental_a error_n this_o be_v which_o be_v against_o such_o principal_a &_o fundamental_a point_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n therefore_o the_o presbyterians_n will_v the_o well_o to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n sound_a advice_n when_o he_o say_v let_v he_o to_o who_o the_o commandment_n be_v heavy_a know_v 10._o aug._n lib._n the_o perfect_a institue_a c._n 10._o that_o he_o have_v not_o get_v the_o gift_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o which_o they_o be_v make_v not_o heavy_a but_o yet_o though_o he_o find_v they_o heavy_a let_v he_o not_o be_v break_v with_o despair_n but_o let_v he_o be_v enforce_v and_o stir_v up_o to_o seek_v to_o beg_v and_o to_o knock_v but_o the_o presbyterian_o who_o hereby_o may_v know_v that_o they_o want_v the_o love_n of_o god_n can_v make_v immediate_a use_n of_o this_o wholesome_a counsel_n to_o seek_v and_o beg_v that_o love_n of_o god_n by_o which_o his_o commandment_n be_v make_v easy_a till_o they_o first_o correct_v or_o rather_o quite_o their_o erroneous_a faith_n whereof_o they_o make_v this_o a_o chief_a article_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o love_n god_n or_o keep_v his_o commandment_n therefore_o they_o must_v first_o beg_v true_a faith_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v god_n commandment_n to_o be_v possible_a with_o help_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o then_o they_o may_v beg_v and_o obtain_v the_o second_o to_o wit_n the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o which_o they_o may_v find_v grace_n to_o fulfil_v they_o this_o article_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o faith_n give_v occasion_n to_o a_o catholic_a gentleman_n of_o my_o acquentance_n to_o say_v to_o the_o presbyterian_o who_o be_v much_o press_v he_o to_o subscrib_n the_o covenant_n that_o he_o will_v never_o be_v of_o their_o religion_n who_o profess_v they_o do_v not_o love_n god_n yea_o and_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o they_o can_v not_o love_v he_o thus_o he_o have_v therefore_o diligent_o consider_v all_o these_o ground_n i_o can_v no_o long_o believe_v the_o impossibility_n of_o keep_v god_n commandment_n even_o with_o the_o help_n of_o his_o grace_n as_o a_o article_n of_o my_o faith_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n which_o i_o find_v to_o be_v against_o scripture_n and_o against_o the_o goodness_n justice_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o some_o protestant_n do_v call_v extreme_a blasphemy_n which_o destroy_v the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o put_v the_o blame_n of_o our_o negligence_n &_o sluggishness_n from_o our_o self_n and_o lay_v all_o upon_o god_n which_o be_v against_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n &_o merit_n of_o his_o passsion_n which_o hinder_v the_o growth_n of_o piety_n and_o open_v a_o gate_n to_o all_o wickedness_n and_o make_v all_o the_o divine_a commandment_n of_o no_o effect_n but_o upon_o the_o contrary_a i_o resolve_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o embrace_v and_o believe_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o possibility_n of_o keep_v the_o commandment_n with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o i_o find_v to_o be_v so_o clear_o express_v in_o scripture_n so_o strong_o maintain_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n so_o consonant_a to_o right_a reason_n justice_n &_o piety_n and_o which_o do_v make_v so_o much_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n grace_n &_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o passion_n chap._n xv._o of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o maintain_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o their_o first_o reformer_n as_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o religion_n after_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o commandment_n i_o consider_v in_o the_o next_o place_n our_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n not_o only_o because_o this_o have_v connexion_n with_o the_o former_a but_o also_o for_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n for_o i_o have_v read_v and_o hear_v this_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o call_v by_o many_o protestant_n the_o soul_n and_o life_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o of_o all_o article_n the_o principal_a and_o great_a on_o the_o contrary_a they_o call_v justification_n by_o work_n the_o life_n of_o popery_n so_o that_o m._n fox_n say_v that_o luther_n 402._o fox_n acts._n man._n p._n 402._o by_o open_v a_o certain_a vein_n which_o lie_v long_o hide_v to_o wit_n our_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o do_v overturn_v the_o foundation_n of_o popery_n moreover_o i_o have_v hear_v it_o affirm_v that_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o be_v so_o certain_a a_o truth_n and_o so_o evident_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o some_o of_o the_o learned_a papist_n after_o they_o have_v much_o opppose_v it_o be_v at_o length_n overcome_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o it_o and_o make_v to_o acknowledge_v it_o and_o there_o be_v no_o point_n of_o popery_n esteem_v to_o be_v more_o absurd_a nor_o more_o against_o the_o scripture_n than_o justification_n by_o work_n in_o so_o much_o that_o m_n knox_n in_o his_o first_o sermon_n at_o s._n andrew_n do_v make_v instance_n principal_o in_o it_o 77._o knox_n chron._n pag._n 76._o 77._o for_o thus_o speak_v his_o history_n of_o he_o he_o plain_o prove_v the_o papist_n doctrine_n &_o law_n to_o repugn_v direct_o to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o of_o christ_n jesus_n his_o son_n this_o he_o prove_v by_o confer_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n express_v in_o the_o scripture_n which_o teach_v that_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n only_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n which_o attribute_n justification_n to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o upon_o several_a occasion_n i_o have_v hear_v the_o minister_n pretend_v great_a advantage_n in_o this_o point_n which_o they_o ordinary_o urge_v very_o much_o have_v then_o no_o small_a expectation_n to_o find_v such_o express_a and_o convince_a scripture_n for_o this_o point_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o that_o any_o impudent_a front_n cold_n hardly_o deny_v it_o i_o begin_v
to_o consider_v these_o passage_n which_o they_o do_v ordinary_o bring_v and_o cote_n on_o the_o margin_n of_o their_o confession_n and_o i_o find_v that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o contain_v in_o express_a word_n the_o presbyterian_a article_n contradictory_n to_o the_o papist_n as_o may_v appear_v to_o any_o man_n who_o will_v read_v the_o word_n these_o passage_n be_v three_o and_o the_o first_o be_v in_o s._n john_n who_o say_v as_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o he_o give_v they_o power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n the_o two_o other_o be_v in_o s._n paul_n 5.1_o john_n ch_n 1._o v._n 12._o rom._n 3.28_o rom._n 5.1_o who_o say_v we_o conclude_v or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a translation_n we_o account_v a_o man_n to_o be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o again_o be_v iustify_v therefore_o by_o faith_n let_v we_o have_v peace_n towards_o god_n now_o in_o none_o of_o these_o place_n can_v i_o find_v it_o write_v that_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n only_o or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o new_a confession_n faith_n be_v the_o alone_a instrument_n of_o justification_n i_o find_v indeed_o that_o the_o scripture_n say_v there_o that_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n but_o i_o can_v not_o find_v where_o it_o say_v by_o faith_n only_o that_o word_n only_o or_o alone_o which_o be_v the_o main_a point_n in_o this_o matter_n can_v be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n albeit_o m._n knox_n in_o his_o foresay_a sermon_n false_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n i_o admire_v to_o see_v both_o our_o first_o and_o last_o reformer_n after_o such_o huge_a pretence_n to_o want_v express_a scripture_n for_o this_o main_a article_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o i_o admire_v much_o more_o when_o i_o find_v the_o catholic_a article_n which_o be_v flat_o contradictory_n to_o the_o protestant_n to_o be_v express_o in_o the_o scripture_n s._n james_n say_v 24._o james_n 2.21_o &_o 24._o abraham_n our_o father_n be_v he_o not_o iustify_v by_o work_n offer_v isaac_n his_o son_n upon_o the_o altar_n and_o again_o do_v you_o see_v that_o by_o work_n a_o man_n be_v iustify_v and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o where_o s._n james_n direct_o contradict_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n for_o they_o say_v a_o man_n be_v not_o iustify_v by_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n only_o and_o s._n james_n say_v a_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o i_o wonder_v how_o we_o can_v brag_v so_o much_o that_o we_o have_v always_o the_o scripture_n for_o we_o against_o the_o papist_n and_o yet_o when_o i_o try_v the_o matter_n i_o find_v ever_o hitherto_o the_o contrary_a as_o may_v be_v find_v by_o any_o man_n who_o will_v not_o renounce_v his_o sense_n of_o hear_v and_o see_v but_o to_o find_v this_o in_o other_o point_n i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o so_o strange_a as_o in_o the_o present_a which_o be_v call_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o wherein_o we_o do_v so_o much_o glory_n against_o the_o papist_n who_o have_v much_o the_o better_a of_o we_o if_o we_o will_v acknowledge_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o stand_v to_o they_o but_o the_o presbyterian_o pretend_v that_o although_o their_o article_n be_v not_o word_n by_o word_n in_o scripture_n yet_o the_o equivalent_a be_v there_o when_o s._n paul_n say_v a_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n which_o they_o say_v be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v by_o faith_n only_o i_o find_v many_o weighty_a reason_n against_o this_o ministerial_a gloss_n 1._o at_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o reformation_n they_o promise_v we_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n and_o now_o they_o give_v we_o for_o it_o their_o guess_n or_o the_o word_n of_o man_n which_o be_v a_o weak_a ground_n of_o faith_n 2._o which_o be_v yet_o worse_o their_o word_n &_o interpretation_n be_v in_o express_a term_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o another_o place_n to_o wit_n in_o s._n james_n as_o we_o have_v see_v 3._o they_o affirm_v that_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n how_o come_v it_o then_o that_o this_o most_o necessary_a &_o substantial_a point_n which_o they_o call_v the_o life_n of_o christianity_n be_v not_o there_o yea_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o not_o only_o it_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n but_o the_o quite_o contrary_a be_v word_n by_o word_n in_o scripture_n and_o that_o not_o simple_o affirm_v but_o prove_v by_o many_o reason_n &_o example_n and_o these_o who_o affirm_v the_o contrary_n be_v compare_v to_o devil_n 4._o the_o holy_a father_n &_o primitive_a church_n do_v never_o understand_v the_o scripture_n in_o that_o sense_n but_o in_o the_o contrary_n how_o then_o can_v i_o in_o sense_n consider_v these_o thing_n make_v the_o minister_n word_n and_o interpretation_n which_o be_v not_o scripture_n yea_o which_o be_v against_o scripture_n and_o against_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o be_v the_o principal_a article_n of_o my_o faith_n s._n augustin_n show_v that_o some_o man_n in_o the_o apostle_n own_o time_n do_v misinterpret_v the_o same_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n as_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v now_o and_o make_v it_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o same_o error_n 7._o aug._n de_fw-fr gr_fw-fr &_o lib._n arb_n cap._n 7._o but_o man_n say_v he_o not_o understand_v what_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o account_v a_o man_n iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n thought_n that_o he_o say_v faith_n will_v suffice_v a_o man_n albeit_o he_o live_v ill_a and_o have_v no_o good_a work_n which_o god_n forbid_v that_o the_o vessel_n of_o election_n shall_v think_v etc._n etc._n second_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n show_v that_o to_o root_v out_o the_o error_n of_o those_o who_o by_o misconstrue_v s._n paul_n word_n do_v gather_v from_o they_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o the_o other_o apostle_n do_v principal_o direct_v the_o intention_n of_o their_o epistle_n s._n peter_n say_v he_o 14._o aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o oper_n c._n 14._o know_v that_o some_o wicked_a man_n take_v occasion_n from_o some_o obscure_a sentence_n of_o s._n paul_n as_o be_v secure_a of_o their_o salvation_n which_o be_v in_o faith_n have_v no_o care_n to_o live_v well_o give_v advertisement_n that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n in_o his_o epistle_n hard_o to_o be_v understand_v which_o man_n pervert_v as_o they_o do_v the_o other_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o perdition_n see_v upon_o what_o a_o dangerous_a ground_n the_o principal_a article_n of_o our_o reformation_n be_v found_v and_o how_o dangerous_a also_o itself_o be_v but_o s._n james_n ibid._n aug._n ibid._n say_v s._n augustin_n be_v so_o high_o offend_v with_o these_o man_n who_o think_v that_o faith_n without_o work_n can_v avail_v unto_o salvation_n that_o he_o compare_v they_o even_o to_o devil_n and_o then_o have_n bring_v these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n thou_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n thou_o do_v well_o the_o devil_n also_o believe_v &_o tremble_v he_o subjoin_v quid_fw-la verius_fw-la brevius_fw-la vehementius_fw-la dici_fw-la potuit_fw-la what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o true_o more_o brief_o &_o efficacious_o thus_o s._n augustin_n and_o that_o he_o alone_o do_v not_o condemn_v this_o error_n &_o maintain_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n opposite_a to_o it_o 54._o cent._n mag._n cent_n 23._o 4._o 5._o cap._n 4._o aug_n haeres_fw-la 54._o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o centurist_n who_o for_o this_o cause_n tax_v the_o most_o ancient_a father_n as_o s._n clement_n origen_n s._n cyprian_n s._n hierome_n s._n ambrose_n augustin_n chrysostome_n &_o many_o more_o moreover_o the_o same_o s._n augustin_n show_v that_o this_o error_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o be_v the_o ancient_a heresy_n of_o eunomius_n 20._o iren._n count_v haeres_fw-la c._n 20._o and_o s._n ireneus_fw-la ascribe_v it_o also_o to_o simon_n magus_n and_o yet_o this_o ancient_a heresy_n against_o the_o scripture_n &_o the_o holy_a father_n be_v obtrude_v upon_o we_o as_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n by_o our_o reformer_n who_o yet_o pretend_v to_o believe_v nothing_o but_o pure_a scripture_n therefore_o i_o resolve_v by_o god_n grace_n not_o to_o believe_v any_o long_o such_o a_o wicked_a opinion_n as_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o my_o religion_n but_o upon_o the_o contrary_a i_o intend_v to_o embrace_v &_o follow_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n opposite_a to_o it_o which_o i_o find_v to_o be_v in_o express_a term_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v so_o understand_v and_o believe_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n i_o be_fw-mi much_o
ordinary_a discourse_n now_o a_o day_n be_v concern_v religion_n so_o i_o hear_v one_o at_o that_o time_n for_o the_o minister_n take_v occasion_n by_o hear_v cardinal_n bellarmin_n name_v speak_v at_o first_o much_o in_o his_o praise_n say_v that_o none_o of_o all_o the_o popish_a author_n do_v relate_v so_o faithful_o the_o protestant_a tenet_n nor_o argument_v more_o clear_o than_o he_o do_v yet_o at_o length_n say_v the_o minister_n after_o the_o cardinal_n have_v show_v the_o strength_n of_o his_o wit_n at_o the_o issue_n of_o the_o matter_n be_v convince_v by_o the_o force_n of_o truth_n he_o conclude_v for_o the_o most_o part_n with_o the_o protestant_n whereupon_o one_o of_o the_o catholic_n present_v say_v that_o he_o admire_v very_o much_o how_o bellarmin_n who_o have_v write_v so_o much_o for_o popry_n shall_v be_v esteem_v a_o protestant_n &_o merry_o subioyn_v that_o himself_o be_v just_a a_o protestant_n as_o bellarmin_n be_v after_o there_o have_v pass_v a_o little_a laughter_n occasion_v by_o these_o word_n the_o other_o catholic_a do_v grave_o desire_v the_o minister_n to_o show_v wherein_o bellarmin_n be_v a_o protestant_n whereupon_o the_o minister_n instance_a in_o this_o same_o matter_n of_o justification_n and_o say_v that_o after_o bellarmin_n have_v weary_v himself_o by_o produce_v many_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v iustify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o he_o in_o end_n yield_v the_o victory_n to_o tthe_v proestant_o for_o he_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v most_o safe_a to_o rely_v upon_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o in_o one_o sentence_n he_o destroy_v what_o he_o have_v be_v build_v a_o long_a time_n to_o which_o the_o catholic_a reply_v that_o if_o bellarmin_n be_v a_o protestant_n for_o that_o than_o all_o catholic_n be_v protestant_n for_o they_o all_o profess_v the_o same_o neither_o be_v the_o catholic_n rely_v on_o christ_n merit_v any_o way_n against_o justification_n by_o good_a work_n more_o than_o the_o protestant_n rely_v on_o the_o same_o merit_n be_v against_o their_o suppose_a justification_n by_o faith_n only_o but_o say_v he_o i_o admire_v very_o much_o how_o you_o ordinary_o pretend_v so_o great_a advantage_n in_o your_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o which_o you_o esteem_v the_o principal_a article_n of_o your_o religion_n and_o yet_o it_o can_v be_v find_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n the_o only_o pretend_a ground_n of_o all_o your_o faith_n and_o how_o you_o can_v cry_v so_o much_o against_o the_o catholic_n for_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v iustify_v by_o work_n &_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o which_o be_v express_o and_o word_n by_o word_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o do_v not_o s._n james_n clear_o say_v you_o see_v that_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o the_o minister_n find_v himself_o thus_o engage_v pass_v present_o from_o the_o scripture_n &_o inquire_v of_o the_o catholic_a who_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o not_o to_o be_v a_o profess_a scholar_n if_o he_o have_v any_o logic_n who_o answer_v he_o have_v not_o much_o but_o he_o have_v sufficient_a for_o this_o purpose_n that_o there_o be_v not_o much_o logic_n require_v to_o see_v what_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n he_o will_v trust_v his_o own_o eye_n in_o that_o matter_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o he_o that_o he_o have_v on_o his_o side_n the_o express_a scripture_n which_o be_v better_o than_o logic_n but_o the_o minister_n tell_v he_o that_o although_o these_o word_n be_v in_o scripture_n yet_o they_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o a_o sound_a sense_n for_o work_n say_v he_o although_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o justification_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o but_o in_o a_o very_a improper_a sense_n for_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o there_o be_v diverse_a kind_n of_o cause_n there_o be_v causa_fw-la efficiens_fw-la causa_fw-la formalis_fw-la and_o causa_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la which_o be_v not_o a_o cause_n proper_o now_o work_n be_v not_o the_o efficient_a nor_o formal_a cause_n but_o only_a causa_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la they_o be_v via_fw-la regni_fw-la and_o not_o causa_fw-la regnandi_fw-la and_o so_o after_o this_o manner_n he_o make_v a_o long_a discourse_n involve_v the_o matter_n in_o great_a obscurity_n pass_v the_o reach_n of_o the_o hearer_n if_o not_o also_o overpass_a his_o own_o understanding_n but_o the_o catholic_a hold_v he_o still_o by_o his_o ground_n tell_v the_o minister_n that_o his_o logic_n be_v no_o scripture_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_n be_v bring_v to_o a_o low_a ebb_n when_o they_o be_v enforce_v to_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o prime_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o express_o in_o scripture_n as_o they_o at_o first_o pretend_v and_o now_o when_o the_o quite_o opposite_a doctrine_n maintain_v by_o the_o catholic_n against_o which_o the_o minister_n do_v so_o much_o rail_v be_v show_v to_o be_v express_o in_o scripture_n they_o be_v enforce_v to_o run_v from_o scripture_n to_o their_o logic_n which_o indeed_o be_v to_o yield_v the_o cause_n to_o the_o catholic_n and_o to_o quite_o ground_n for_o at_o first_o they_o pretend_v nothing_o but_o scripture_n and_o now_o they_o fly_v to_o aristotle_n logic_n and_o that_o against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n make_v the_o whole_a matter_n end_n in_o a_o logomachy_n which_o be_v so_o much_o the_o worse_o on_o the_o protestant_n side_n see_v they_o will_v not_o use_v the_o very_a phrase_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o catholic_n keep_v and_o upon_o this_o follow_v also_o another_o evil_n that_o the_o people_n be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n only_o and_o not_o by_o work_n make_v by_o natural_a logic_n this_o inference_n which_o all_o the_o minister_n in_o the_o world_n with_o all_o their_o artificial_a logic_n will_v not_o put_v out_o of_o their_o head_n that_o good_a work_n be_v not_o necessary_a and_o so_o they_o altogether_o neglect_v they_o thus_o end_v that_o conference_n the_o minister_n reply_v something_o but_o little_a to_o purpose_n with_o small_a satisfaction_n of_o some_o protestant_n present_v who_o imagine_v that_o this_o prime_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n have_v be_v better_o ground_v and_o that_o this_o minister_n who_o they_o much_o esteem_v can_v have_v say_v more_o then_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o his_o faith_n be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o end_n to_o run_v to_o his_o philosophical_a distinction_n which_o be_v not_o by_o they_o intelligible_a but_o albeit_o i_o be_v sufficient_o satisfy_v by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v justification_n yet_o be_v desirous_a that_o i_o may_v be_v able_a to_o discern_v more_o full_o the_o deceit_n and_o obscurity_n which_o the_o minister_n invent_v to_o elude_v the_o clear_a scripture_n a_o catholic_a who_o assistance_n i_o require_v show_v i_o that_o for_o this_o end_n it_o be_v necessary_a i_o shall_v first_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o as_o a_o rule_n say_v he_o be_v a_o measure_n to_o discern_v both_o what_o be_v right_a and_o what_o be_v crooked_a so_o truth_n be_v a_o manifestation_n both_o of_o it_o self_n and_o of_o falsehood_n whereupon_o he_o have_v several_a discourse_n with_o i_o on_o this_o matter_n the_o sum_n of_o which_o i_o will_v brief_o collect_v chap._n xvi_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n albeit_o you_o have_v see_v evident_o say_v the_o catholic_a unto_o i_o that_o according_a to_o the_o express_a scripture_n man_n be_v iustify_v by_o work_n &_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o yet_o that_o you_o may_v know_v how_o this_o be_v do_v and_o what_o work_n be_v exclude_v from_o justification_n according_a to_o s._n paul_n and_o what_o these_o work_n be_v by_o which_o we_o be_v iustify_v according_a to_o s._n james_n you_o must_v know_v the_o nature_n of_o justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n which_o according_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v thus_o describe_v justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n be_v the_o translation_n of_o one_o from_o the_o state_n of_o sin_n into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n a_o change_n of_o one_o from_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o make_v he_o become_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n there_o be_v the_o misery_n from_o which_o a_o sinner_n be_v deliver_v &_o the_o happiness_n to_o which_o he_o be_v bring_v now_o that_o he_o may_v come_v from_o such_o a_o miserable_a condition_n to_o such_o a_o happy_a estate_n there_o be_v some_o preparation_n and_o disposition_n require_v to_o go_v before_o in_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o sinner_n that_o be_v come_v to_o age_n of_o which_o kind_n only_o we_o here_o speak_v first_o god_n of_o
his_o mere_a mercy_n by_o his_o preven_n and_o help_a grace_n do_v excite_v and_o call_v a_o sinner_n without_o any_o of_o his_o precede_a merit_n as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o sleep_n of_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v convert_v himself_o unto_o god_n 2._o a_o sinner_n be_v thus_o awake_v and_o assist_v by_o the_o divine_a grace_n conceive_v faith_n by_o hear_v do_v believe_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v reveal_v &_o promise_v by_o god_n &_o particular_o that_o a_o sinner_n be_v iustify_v by_o the_o free_a mercy_n of_o god_n through_o the_o redemption_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n 3._o this_o faith_n represent_v god_n to_o be_v a_o severe_a punisher_n of_o sin_n there_o arise_v in_o a_o sinner_n thus_o dispose_v by_o faith_n a_o fear_n of_o god_n judgment_n with_o which_o the_o soul_n be_v profitable_o shake_v &_o terrify_v 7_o prou._n ●_o 7_o for_o as_o solomon_n say_v the_o fear_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o wisdom_n 4._o the_o soul_n of_o a_o sinner_n be_v thus_o terrify_v it_o be_v raise_v up_o again_o to_o hope_v by_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o represent_v god_n to_o be_v most_o bountiful_a &_o merciful_a in_o forgive_a sin_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o send_v his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o deliver_v we_o from_o sin_n by_o his_o death_n 5._o upon_o this_o hope_n &_o confidence_n in_o the_o divine_a mercy_n there_o arise_v the_o love_n of_o god_n who_o be_v so_o bountiful_a and_o merciful_a and_o likewise_o a_o hatred_n and_o detestation_n of_o sin_n which_o god_n hate_v a_o sorrow_n and_o grief_n for_o what_o be_v past_a and_o a_o firm_a resolution_n of_o a_o better_a life_n in_o time_n to_o come_v a_o purpose_n of_o observe_v the_o divine_a commandment_n &_o of_o receive_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n now_o all_o these_o disposition_n of_o fa_fw-mi the_o fear_n love_n hope_v and_o the_o rest_n be_v place_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n by_o god_n preven_a grace_n justification_n or_o the_o infusion_n of_o justify_v grace_n do_v follow_v as_o we_o shall_v see_v short_o that_o these_o preparation_n &_o difposition_n be_v necessary_a before_o justification_n the_o scripture_n show_v our_o saviour_n show_v the_o necessity_n of_o preven_a grace_n when_o he_o say_v 17._o john_n 6.44_o heb._n 11.6_o eccles_n 1.28_o &_o ibid._n v._n 17._o no_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o i_o unless_o my_o father_n draw_v he_o of_o faith_n s._n paul_n say_v that_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n for_o he_o that_o come_v to_o god_n must_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o those_o who_o seek_v he_o of_o fear_n beside_o the_o former_a testimony_n of_o solomon_n it_o be_v say_v that_o who_o be_v without_o fear_n can_v be_v iustify_v and_o again_o the_o fear_n of_o our_o lord_n chase_v away_o sin_n s._n paul_n say_v of_o hope_n that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o it_o 7.47_o rom._n 8.24_o luke_n 7.47_o of_o love_v our_o saviour_n say_v many_o sin_n be_v forgive_v she_o for_o she_o love_v much_o and_o that_o repentance_n be_v also_o necessary_a there_o be_v nothing_o more_o clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n by_o all_o which_o testimony_n it_o remain_v evident_a that_o although_o faith_n be_v the_o first_o disposition_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o justification_n yet_o the_o other_o abovementioned_a be_v also_o requisite_a neither_o can_v there_o be_v any_o difficulty_n in_o this_o matter_n since_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n that_o no_o man_n of_o a_o sinner_n can_v become_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n unless_o he_o have_v not_o only_a faith_n but_o also_o the_o fear_n &_o love_n of_o god_n with_o hope_n in_o his_o mercy_n and_o repentance_n for_o sin_n to_o this_o purpose_n s._n augustin_n say_v dom_n aug_n the_o prede_a sanct_a cap._n 7_o idem_fw-la serm_fw-la 22._o de_fw-fr verb._n dom_n fides_fw-la prima_fw-la datur_fw-la ex_fw-la qua_fw-la cetera_fw-la impetrantur_fw-la that_o be_v faith_n be_v first_o give_v by_o which_o the_o rest_n be_v obtain_v and_o again_o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v found_v by_o faith_n raise_v up_o hy_z hope_n and_o perfect_v by_o charity_n and_o as_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v true_o say_v that_o faith_n do_v justify_v to_o wit_n as_o a_o fundamental_a &_o radical_a disposition_n to_o justification_n so_o it_o be_v no_o less_o true_a that_o fear_n hope_v love_n &_o repentance_n do_v also_o justify_v to_o wit_n as_o secondary_a disposition_n proceed_v from_o faith_n because_o these_o likewise_o dispose_v the_o soul_n fit_o to_o receive_v the_o form_n of_o justice_n and_o to_o become_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n and_o the_o scripture_n ascribe_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n salvation_n or_o justification_n to_o they_o as_o it_o do_v unto_o faith_n for_o as_o our_o saviour_n tell_v s._n mary_n magdalen_n that_o her_o faith_n have_v save_v she_o 2._o luke_n 7._o rom._n 8._o jam._n 2._o so_o he_o say_v that_o many_o sin_n be_v forgive_v she_o because_o she_o love_v much_o and_o s._n paul_n say_v we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n and_o s._n james_n express_o that_o we_o be_v iustify_v by_o work_n &_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o by_o which_o consideration_n it_o may_v be_v easy_o understand_v what_o work_v s._n paul_n exclude_v from_o justification_n when_o he_o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o he_o do_v not_o exclude_v the_o work_n of_o grace_n but_o only_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o faith_n but_o go_v before_o it_o now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o such_o work_n as_o not_o proceed_v from_o faith_n do_v not_o proper_o dispose_v and_o prepare_v the_o soul_n unto_o salvation_n 8._o council_n t_o r_o d_o sess_v 6._o c●p_n 8._o for_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n teach_v faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n root_n and_o beginning_n of_o all_o salvation_n &_o justification_n and_o be_v the_o first_o effect_n of_o god_n free_a grace_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n but_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o exclude_v from_o justification_n the_o work_n of_o grace_n which_o follow_v faith_n for_o they_o do_v justify_v that_o be_v dispose_v the_o soul_n unto_o justification_n as_o faith_n itself_o do_v and_o they_o proce_fw-la do_v also_o from_o grace_n as_o faith_n proceed_v from_o it_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n after_o this_o manner_n do_v that_o great_a doctor_n s._n augustin_n clear_o reconcile_v these_o two_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n &_o s._n james._n 76._o aug._n lib._n 83._o quaest_n 76._o the_o sentence_n say_v he_o of_o s._n paul_n &_o s._n james_n be_v not_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o wh●n_o one_o affirm_v that_o a_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n &_o the_o other_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v vain_a without_o work_n for_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o work_n that_o go_v before_o faith_n and_o s._n james_n of_o work_n that_o do_v follow_v faith_n these_o preparation_n &_o disposition_n be_v place_v in_o the_o soul_n justification_n itself_o do_v follow_v which_o be_v not_o only_a remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o sanctification_n and_o renovation_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n by_o the_o voluntary_a reception_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n &_o gift_n but_o albeit_o justification_n follow_v these_o disposition_n of_o faith_n love_n repentance_n &_o &_o the_o rest_n yet_o it_o be_v altogether_o free_a proceed_v from_o the_o mercy_n &_o bounty_n of_o god_n without_o the_o desert_n of_o man_n for_o the_o catholic_a church_n profess_v open_o notwitstand_v the_o minister_n strong_a calumny_n to_o the_o contrary_a that_o no_o man_n by_o any_o faith_n or_o work_n can_v merit_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n 8._o council_n trid._n sess_v 6._o cap._n 8._o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n teach_v in_o these_o word_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v free_o iustify_v because_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o precede_v justification_n whether_o faith_n or_o work_v do_v merit_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n now_o this_o grace_n consist_v in_o two_o thing_n be_v to_o wit_n in_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o inward_a sanctification_n by_o the_o first_o the_o soul_n be_v change_v &_o purge_v from_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o filthiness_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o by_o the_o second_o it_o be_v adorn_v and_o beautify_v with_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o beauty_n of_o it_o and_o make_v to_o die_v unto_o sin_n &_o live_v unto_o justice_n but_o it_o must_v be_v diligent_o observe_v that_o the_o catholic_n do_v teach_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o in_o justification_n our_o sin_n be_v not_o so_o forgive_v that_o they_o remain_v in_o the_o soul_n but_o they_o be_v
confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n our_o lord_n jesus_n 10.9_o rom._n 10.9_o and_o in_o thy_o hart_n believe_v that_o god_n raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v s._n john_n say_v also_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v 20.31_o john_n 20.31_o that_o you_o may_v believe_v jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v everlasting_a life_n here_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o calvin_n special_a faith_n and_o yet_o we_o see_v how_o abraham_n &_o other_o be_v iustify_v without_o it_o by_o believe_v these_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v 11.33_o rom._n 11.33_o 4._o s._n paul_n esteem_v predestination_n one_o of_o the_o most_o deep_a secret_n of_o god_n cry_v out_o o_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o wisdom_n &_o knowledge_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o every_o calvinist_n will_v know_v this_o secret_a in_o relation_n to_o himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v one_o of_o god_n privy_a counsellor_n or_o god_n have_v particular_o reveal_v it_o to_o he_o s._n augustin_n say_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 13._o aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr corraept_fw-fr &_o gr_n c._n 13._o who_o of_o all_o the_o campany_n of_o the_o faithful_a so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v in_o this_o mortality_n can_v presume_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o predestinate_a what_o will_v s._n augustin_n have_v say_v of_o the_o presbyterian_o who_o do_v not_o only_o so_o presume_v but_o make_v it_o also_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o the_o very_a ground_n of_o their_o justification_n 5._o this_o belief_n of_o the_o assurance_n of_o election_n be_v against_o the_o scripture_n which_o show_v that_o man_n know_v not_o whether_o he_o be_v worthy_a love_n or_o hatred_n 2.12_o eccles_n 9.1_o phil_n p._n 2.12_o and_o exhort_v we_o to_o work_v out_o our_o salvation_n in_o fear_n and_o tremble_a and_o advertise_v he_o who_o stand_v to_o take_v head_n lest_o he_o fall_v last_o as_o this_o presumptuous_a belief_n open_v a_o wide_a gate_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o vice_n and_o banish_v the_o exercise_n of_o virtue_n &_o true_a piety_n which_o may_v be_v easy_o show_v so_o the_o seek_v this_o faith_n have_v make_v diverse_a loose_v all_o hope_n and_o it_o have_v prove_v pernicious_a to_o they_o both_o in_o soul_n &_o body_n for_o experience_n have_v prove_v that_o it_o have_v make_v diverse_a to_o be_v trouble_v in_o spirit_n and_o loose_v their_o wit_n and_o some_o to_o fall_v into_o despair_n by_o put_v violent_a hand_n in_o themselves_o as_o it_o do_v not_o long_o ago_o to_o a_o famous_a covenanter_n in_o aberdeen_n mercer_n m._n t._n mercer_n who_o drown_v himself_o when_o he_o be_v esteem_v by_o the_o minister_n there_o to_o have_v be_v at_o the_o very_a point_n of_o get_v assurance_n of_o his_o election_n so_o that_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o of_o the_o old_a protestant_a minister_n condemn_v much_o this_o justify_n faith_n of_o the_o puritan_n 36.38_o shel_n p._n 36.38_o and_o m._n shelford_n do_v not_o stand_v to_o call_v it_o a_o private_a fancy_n and_o a_o false_a faith_n and_o a_o enemy_n to_o all_o true_a virtue_n &_o piety_n therefore_o by_o god_n grace_n i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o believe_v it_o much_o less_o to_o found_v my_o salvation_n upon_o it_o all_o the_o assurance_n that_o we_o can_v have_v here_o without_o god_n particular_a revelation_n be_v by_o hope_n in_o the_o divine_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n which_o hope_n be_v not_o only_o fufficient_a to_o comfort_v we_o in_o this_o life_n but_o also_o it_o will_v not_o confound_v we_o in_o the_o next_o if_o we_o strive_v here_o to_o do_v our_o duty_n and_o have_v the_o love_n of_o god_n pour_v forth_o in_o our_o heart_n therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o virtue_n of_o hope_n and_o not_o to_o faith_n to_o apply_v the_o divine_a promise_n as_o the_o same_o m._n shelford_n do_v acknowledge_v beside_o all_o these_o authority_n &_o reason_n a_o catholic_a show_v i_o that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o destroy_v itself_o for_o if_o we_o can_v be_v iustify_v by_o any_o work_n than_o we_o can_v not_o be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n since_o faith_n itself_o be_v a_o work_n according_a to_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v therefore_o say_v he_o since_o we_o be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o against_o the_o divine_a grace_n nor_o our_o free_a justification_n because_o faith_n itself_o be_v a_o work_n of_o grace_n so_o we_o may_v be_v also_o justify_v by_o love_n hope_v and_o other_o work_n of_o grace_n without_o any_o derogation_n from_o the_o divine_a grace_n he_o do_v further_o urge_v and_o say_v either_o the_o faith_n by_o which_o the_o calvinist_n say_v that_o man_n be_v iustify_v be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n or_o not_o if_o it_o be_v a_o deadly_a sin_n then_o they_o be_v iustify_v by_o sin_n which_o be_v impious_a to_o say_v if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mortal_a sin_n then_o all_o our_o action_n be_v not_o sin_n as_o luther_n &_o calvin_n false_o teach_v the_o same_o catholic_a show_v i_o that_o to_o shun_v these_o inconvenience_n to_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o calvinist_n drive_v they_o they_o affirm_v that_o faith_n albeit_o it_o be_v a_o work_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o justify_v as_o a_o work_n of_o virtue_n but_o only_o as_o a_o instrument_n to_o apprehend_v the_o justice_n of_o christ_n calvin_n say_v that_o faith_n oper_n cal._n ib._n 3_o instit._fw-la cap._n 11._o sect_n 7._o mel._n in_o locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr bon_fw-fr oper_n although_o it_o be_v of_o no_o dignity_n nor_o price_n iustifyes_n we_o bring_v christ_n as_o a_o pot_n fill_v with_o money_n enrich_v a_o man_n melanchton_n say_v that_o justify_v faith_n be_v like_o a_o poor_a man_n hand_n which_o he_o stretch_v forth_o to_o receive_v alm_n from_o a_o rich_a man_n and_o so_o at_o length_n this_o justify_n faith_n which_o the_o presbyterian_o so_o much_o cry_v up_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o calvin_n be_v of_o no_o price_n nor_o dignity_n so_o that_o by_o he_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o pot_n and_o by_o another_o great_a light_n to_o a_o scab_a man_n '_o hand_n and_o by_o both_o their_o principle_n it_o be_v a_o sinful_a instrument_n by_o which_o they_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v iustify_v whereby_o say_v the_o catholic_a it_o may_v appear_v that_o these_o man_n be_v no_o less_o enemy_n to_o faith_n then_o to_o work_n and_o that_o they_o destroy_v the_o goodness_n &_o virtue_n of_o both_o whereas_o the_o catholic_n do_v esteem_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o excellent_a virtue_n and_o the_o very_a root_n &_o foundation_n of_o our_o justification_n there_o be_v a_o other_o difficulty_n arise_v clear_o from_o the_o presbyterian_a doctrine_n with_o which_o the_o same_o catholic_a do_v much_o press_v i_o and_o some_o other_o protestant_n who_o be_v present_a either_o say_v he_o the_o presbyterian_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v assure_v of_o their_o election_n be_v purge_v &_o cleanse_v from_o the_o filthiness_n of_o their_o sin_n before_o they_o can_v enter_v into_o heaven_n or_o they_o be_v not_o purge_v at_o all_o from_o they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o purge_v from_o they_o then_o they_o can_v enter_v into_o that_o heavenly_a city_n for_o s._n john_n say_v there_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o it_o any_o pollute_a thing_n that_o city_n be_v describe_v to_o be_v of_o pure_a gold_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o to_o be_v adorn_v with_o every_o precious_a stone_n therefore_o the_o citizen_n of_o it_o must_v also_o be_v pure_a and_o without_o spot_n and_o consequent_o if_o the_o presbyterian_o be_v not_o purge_v from_o the_o filthiness_n and_o sore_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o must_v not_o be_v only_o cover_v but_o real_o take_v away_o cure_v and_o cleanse_v they_o can_v enter_v into_o heaven_n if_o they_o say_v that_o they_o must_v be_v purge_v from_o their_o sin_n and_o all_o filthiness_n and_o blot_v take_v from_o they_o before_o they_o can_v enter_v into_o heaven_n then_o they_o be_v either_o purge_v from_o their_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v not_o in_o this_o because_o they_o teach_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v not_o take_v away_o in_o this_o life_n but_o be_v only_o cover_v and_o the_o filthiness_n of_o they_o remain_v and_o as_o they_o live_v so_o they_o di●_n in_o sin_n not_o after_o this_o life_n for_o then_o they_o behove_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o purgatory_n which_o be_v against_o a_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o negative_a faith_n if_o they_o say_v their_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o by_o death_n in_o the_o very_a instant_n of_o it_o then_o since_o death_n be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n if_o death_n have_v that_o power_n
all_o man_n will_v be_v cleanse_v from_o sin_n and_o so_o all_o will_v be_v save_v which_o be_v false_a if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o death_n simple_o but_o death_n join_v with_o faith_n that_o have_v this_o power_n why_o shall_v not_o also_o faith_n and_o life_n have_v the_o same_o power_n how_o can_v the_o presbyterian_o without_o any_o ground_n in_o scripture_n assign_v that_o power_n to_o faith_n and_o death_n which_o they_o deny_v against_o scripture_n to_o faith_n and_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n death_n indeed_o may_v put_v a_o end_n to_o sin_n that_o one_o sin_n no_o more_o but_o it_o can_v take_v away_o sin_n already_o do_v or_o else_o death_n will_v be_v more_o powerful_a according_a to_o that_o tenet_n than_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o groundless_a fancy_n but_o also_o a_o great_a absurdity_n out_o of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o either_o the_o presbyterian_o must_v grant_v that_o they_o do_v not_o go_v to_o heaven_n which_o be_v very_o much_o against_o the_o assurance_n of_o their_o election_n or_o that_o they_o be_v purge_v from_o their_o sin_n after_o this_o life_n since_o they_o be_v not_o purge_v in_o it_o which_o be_v against_o their_o negative_a confession_n and_o so_o these_o who_o deny_v a_o a_o purgatory_n for_o venial_a sin_n must_v grant_v a_o new_a and_o most_o dangerous_a purgatory_n for_o mortal_a sin_n for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v never_o find_v a_o solid_a answer_n to_o this_o reason_n and_o therefore_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o presbytery_n consideration_n but_o because_o this_o catholic_a do_v trouble_v we_o with_o this_o difficulty_n i_o think_v to_o have_v entangle_v he_o as_o much_o with_o the_o word_n of_o bellarmin_n whereof_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o ministera_fw-la often_o boast_n do_v not_o bellarmin_n say_v i_o after_o he_o have_v much_o labour_v to_o prove_v justification_n by_o work_n in_o end_n conclude_v that_o it_o be_v most_o safe_a to_o put_v all_o our_o confidence_n in_o the_o only_a mercy_n of_o god_n what_o will_v become_v then_o of_o all_o your_o work_n and_o merit_n which_o such_o a_o great_a champion_n of_o your_o church_n do_v renounce_v to_o which_o he_o answer_v that_o beauties_n word_n full_o relate_v do_v clear_a the_o whole_a matter_n 3._o bellar._n lib._n 5._o the_o justif_a cap._n 7._o prop._n 3._o and_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o minister_n pretence_n for_o thus_o he_o speak_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o our_o proper_a justice_n and_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o our_o vain_a glory_n it_o be_v most_o safe_a to_o put_v all_o our_o confidence_n in_o the_o only_a mercy_n &_o favour_n of_o god_n where_o he_o do_v not_o deny_v neither_o good_a work_n nor_o merit_n but_o only_o affirm_v that_o for_o two_o reason_n which_o he_o there_o touch_v that_o it_o be_v most_o safe_a not_o to_o rely_v upon_o they_o but_o upon_o the_o alone_a mercy_n of_o god_n out_o of_o which_o the_o minister_n will_v make_v this_o false_a collection_n therefore_o we_o be_v not_o iustify_v by_o work_n which_o be_v as_o ridiculous_a as_o if_o you_o will_v say_v the_o protestant_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v most_o safe_a to_o rely_v upon_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o iustify_v by_o faith_n if_o then_o the_o protestant_n rely_v upon_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n take_v not_o away_o justification_n by_o faith_n why_o shall_v not_o also_o the_o catholic_n rely_v on_o the_o same_o mercy_n not_o take_v away_o justification_n by_o work_n bellarmin_n speak_v so_o clear_o in_o this_o matter_n that_o his_o meaning_n can_v be_v wrest_v without_o malice_n for_o he_o show_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o david_n and_o other_o saint_n have_v some_o confidence_n in_o their_o justice_n and_o good_a work_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o 17._o psalm_n the_o lord_n will_v render_v to_o i_o according_a to_o my_o justice_n because_o i_o have_v keep_v his_o way_n the_o like_a he_o show_v of_o nehemias_n ezechias_n and_o ester_n and_o this_o they_o do_v with_o great_a humility_n but_o because_o such_o confidence_n be_v dangerous_a to_o many_o by_o reason_n of_o pride_n &_o vain_a glory_n that_o may_v arise_v &_o beside_o there_o be_v few_o who_o have_v such_o merit_n or_o be_v sure_a to_o have_v they_o therefore_o bellarmin_n say_v it_o be_v most_o safe_a to_o rely_v on_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n whereof_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n either_o a_o man_n have_v good_a work_n or_o he_o have_v none_o but_o evil_a work_n if_o he_o have_v no_o good_a but_o evil_a work_n then_o he_o be_v pernicious_o deceive_v who_o trust_v in_o evil_a work_n for_o these_o be_v deceitful_a riches_n as_o s._n bernard_n call_v they_o if_o he_o have_v good_a work_n he_o lose_v nothing_o by_o not_o look_v on_o they_o &_o by_o put_v his_o trust_n in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n alone_o for_o god_n look_v on_o they_o &_o know_v they_o well_o and_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o pass_v without_o their_o due_a reward_n thus_o bellarmin_n yea_o 16._o council_n trid._n sess_v 6._o cap._n 16._o the_o council_n of_o trent_n make_v the_o like_a profession_n when_o it_o say_v although_o much_o be_v give_v to_o good_a work_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n yet_o god_n forbid_v that_o a_o christian_n shall_v trust_v or_o glory_n in_o himself_o &_o not_o in_o our_o lord_n who_o goodness_n be_v so_o great_a that_o he_o will_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v our_o merit_n which_o be_v his_o own_o gift_n the_o minister_n may_v collect_v out_o of_o these_o word_n by_o their_o logic_n that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n yea_o and_o that_o all_o papist_n be_v protestant_n but_o they_o will_v not_o distinguish_v between_o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n and_o confide_v in_o they_o which_o be_v very_o different_a at_o least_o all_o moderate_a protestant_n may_v know_v by_o this_o open_a profession_n the_o falsehood_n of_o that_o calumny_n which_o be_v often_o beat_v into_o their_o ear_n to_o wit_n that_o all_o papist_n presume_v in_o their_o merit_n s._n augustin_n show_v that_o there_o be_v two_o gulf_n in_o this_o matter_n one_o upon_o either_o hand_n and_o that_o the_o truth_n be_v a_o direct_a way_n in_o the_o middle_n presumption_n of_o justice_n or_o good_a work_n be_v the_o gulf_n upon_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o negligence_n of_o good_a work_n be_v the_o precipice_n on_o the_o other_o but_o the_o earnest_a care_n of_o good_a work_n and_o piety_n accompany_v with_o humility_n be_v the_o safe_a way_n in_o the_o middle_n thus_o end_v the_o catholic_a to_o the_o good_a satisfaction_n of_o some_o protestant_n who_o be_v present_a to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n wherein_o i_o have_v stay_v long_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o minister_n specious_a pretence_n of_o great_a advantage_n in_o it_o i_o can_v not_o believe_v any_o more_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o as_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o my_o religion_n because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o sctipture_n because_o it_o be_v express_o against_o scripture_n &_o against_o the_o holy_a father_n because_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a heresy_n condemn_v in_o simon_n magus_n &_o eunomius_n because_o the_o presbyterians_n justify_v faith_n be_v not_o a_o true_a catholic_a faith_n have_v the_o divin_fw-fr reveal_v truth_n for_o its_o object_n as_o these_o he_o retique_n require_v but_o be_v a_o private_a fancy_n &_o a_o false_a faith_n above_o shelf_n above_o as_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o some_o protestant_n have_v for_o its_o object_n humane_a presumption_n because_o it_o make_v christ_n a_o most_o imperfect_a physician_n and_o either_o debar_v man_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n into_o which_o he_o can_v enter_v with_o the_o filthiness_n of_o his_o sin_n or_o expose_v he_o after_o this_o life_n to_o a_o most_o dangerous_a purgation_n because_o it_o breed_v neglect_v of_o all_o piety_n and_o good_a work_n and_o open_v a_o wide_a gate_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o vice_n in_o a_o word_n albeit_o the_o minister_n brag_v much_o of_o this_o article_n yet_o i_o find_v they_o have_v never_o less_o reason_n if_o we_o will_v stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o father_n which_o god_n willing_a i_o ever_o intend_v to_o prefer_v to_o their_o fancy_n and_o to_o their_o philosophical_a distinction_n or_o rather_o confusion_n to_o which_o they_o be_v force_v to_o run_v that_o they_o may_v lurk_v in_o their_o obscurity_n when_o they_o be_v beat_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o at_o first_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v impregnable_o settle_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o that_o the_o scripture_n express_o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o which_o be_v the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o faith_n and_o
calvin_n doctrine_n to_o be_v false_a so_o i_o soon_o perceive_v that_o his_o pretence_n of_o preserve_v god_n honour_n be_v very_o frivolous_a for_o how_o can_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n derogate_v from_o the_o power_n &_o honour_n of_o christ_n since_o all_o power_n &_o virtue_n that_o they_o have_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v from_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o principal_a agent_n and_o author_n of_o grace_n they_o be_v only_o the_o instrument_n by_o which_o he_o produce_v it_o how_o can_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n draw_v people_n from_o god_n and_o make_v they_o rely_v more_o on_o corporal_a thing_n then_o on_o god_n since_o it_o be_v so_o spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a rather_o draw_v people_n from_o corporal_a thing_n to_o god_n and_o make_v they_o to_o admire_v more_o his_o power_n &_o to_o love_v his_o goodness_n this_o be_v the_o effect_n that_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n produce_v in_o s._n augustin_n when_o with_o admiration_n he_o cry_v out_o whence_o have_v the_o water_n that_o virtue_n that_o it_o touch_v the_o body_n &_o cleanse_v the_o soul_n a_o catholic_a do_v further_o illustrate_v this_o matter_n to_o i_o by_o a_o example_n who_o can_v be_v so_o void_a of_o reason_n say_v he_o as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o virtue_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o hem_n of_o our_o saviour_n garment_n by_o touch_v whereof_o 8.44_o luke_n 8.44_o the_o woman_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v cure_v do_v derogate_v from_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n or_o will_v make_v the_o woman_n to_o rely_v or_o fix_v her_o eye_n be_v more_o on_o the_o garman_n then_o on_o christ_n himself_o but_o rather_o be_v not_o the_o contrary_n most_o evident_a that_o thereby_o the_o power_n &_o virtue_n of_o christ_n be_v much_o illustrate_v who_o by_o such_o a_o small_a instrument_n have_v produce_v so_o wonderful_a a_o effect_n and_o be_v not_o the_o woman_n &_o all_o the_o people_n present_a draw_v thereby_o more_o close_o to_o christ_n and_o make_v to_o love_v his_o goodness_n and_o admire_v his_o power_n it_o be_v just_a so_o in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o that_o virtue_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o hemne_a of_o our_o saviour_n garment_n cure_v supernatural_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n so_o the_o virtue_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o sacrament_n cure_v the_o disease_n and_o infirmity_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o as_o that_o tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n so_o do_v this_o much_o more_o thus_o he_o moreover_o i_o find_v this_o presbyterian_a opinion_n which_o rob_v the_o sacrament_n of_o all_o virtue_n to_o be_v a_o ancient_a heresy_n condemn_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n heres●b_n epiph._n she_o 80._o aug._n haeres_fw-la 57_o damas_n lib._n the_o heres●b_n in_o some_o heretic_n call_v messalian_o who_o teach_v that_o sin_n be_v purge_v without_o the_o divine_a sacrament_n as_o s._n epiphanius_n s._n augustin_n &_o damascen_n do_v testify_v there_o be_v indeed_o this_o difference_n between_o they_o &_o the_o calvinist_n that_o they_o ascribe_v that_o power_n of_o purge_v sin_n to_o prayer_n which_o these_o do_v in_o their_o own_o manner_n to_o faith_n last_o this_o opinion_n of_o luther_n &_o calvin_n be_v so_o false_a &_o absurd_a 72._o prot._n apol._n tract_n 3._o sect_n 4._o in_o mark_fw-mi add_v 111._o mont._n orig._n pag._n 72._o that_o diverse_a famous_a protestant_n as_o osiander_n whitaker_n hooker_n bilson_n and_o other_o cite_v in_o the_o protestant_n apology_n beside_o some_o more_o late_a doctor_n of_o the_o late_a english_a church_n have_v reject_v it_o and_o believe_v with_o the_o catholic_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v but_o also_o confer_v grace_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o difference_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v put_v between_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o these_o of_o the_o euangel_n all_o which_o consideration_n give_v i_o sufficient_a ground_n not_o to_o make_v any_o long_o such_o a_o gross_a error_n a_o article_n of_o my_o faith_n but_o because_o the_o first_o &_o chief_a protestant_n deny_v the_o sacrament_n to_o confer_v grace_n i_o be_v curious_a to_o know_v for_o what_o end_n they_o think_v the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v 14._o melanch_n in_o locis_fw-la come_v c._n de_fw-fr signis_fw-la zuing._n de_fw-la vera_fw-la &_o fall_v relig_n c._n de_fw-fr sacram_fw-la luth._o the_o cap_a bab._n cap._n ultimo_fw-la also_o cal._n lib._n 4._o inst_z c._n 14._o and_o for_o what_o use_v they_o serve_v and_o in_o this_o matter_n i_o find_v a_o diversity_n among_o they_o melanchton_n say_v that_o they_o serve_v as_o badge_n to_o distinguish_v we_o from_o infidel_n zuinglius_fw-la make_v sacrament_n no_o better_o than_o soldier_n mark_n by_o which_o they_o be_v distinguish_v luther_n say_v that_o they_o be_v external_a sign_n ordain_v to_o stir_v up_o our_o faith_n calvin_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n but_o he_o add_v that_o they_o be_v seal_n of_o god_n promise_n ordain_v to_o uphold_v our_o faith_n to_o wit_n his_o special_a &_o justify_v faith_n when_o it_o be_v object_v to_o luther_n by_o the_o catholic_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n can_v not_o stir_v up_o faith_n in_o infant_n baptize_v who_o have_v no_o use_n of_o reason_n he_o be_v bring_v to_o that_o straight_o that_o he_o say_v infant_n do_v actual_o believe_v whilst_o they_o be_v baptize_v which_o be_v so_o false_a that_o as_o s._n augustin_n speak_v they_o 19_o aug._n epist_n 57_o ad_fw-la dardan_n cal._n lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 16._o sect_n 19_o who_o affirm_v such_o thing_n do_v a_o injury_n to_o humane_a sense_n calvin_n not_o rely_v full_o upon_o luther_n unreasonnable_a opinion_n say_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n stir_v up_o their_o faith_n when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n which_o doctrine_n give_v great_a advantage_n to_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o show_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n be_v not_o profitable_a before_o they_o attain_v to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o chieff_a protestant_a reformer_n the_o sacrament_n be_v nothing_o but_o badge_n or_o bare_a sign_n &_o token_n or_o seal_n of_o god_n promise_n without_o any_o inward_a effect_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v make_v by_o they_o to_o serve_v to_o little_a or_o no_o purpose_n by_o which_o i_o see_v what_o uncertainty_n be_v among_o these_o reformer_n even_o in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o how_o abject_o they_o speak_v and_o think_v of_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n whereas_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o holy_a father_n speak_v most_o reverent_o &_o esteem_v high_o of_o they_o show_v that_o they_o be_v ordain_v principal_o for_o our_o sanctification_n according_a to_o that_o famous_a definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n 11._o aug._n lib._n 10._o de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la c._n 5._o idem_fw-la quaest_n 84._o in_o levit._n et_fw-la lib._n 19_o con●_n faust_n cap._n 11._o collect_v out_o of_o s._n augustin_n a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o visible_a sign_n of_o invisible_a grace_n institute_v by_o christ_n for_o our_o sanctification_n to_o which_o purpose_n the_o same_o holy_a father_n say_v without_o the_o grace_n of_o invisible_a sanctification_n to_o what_o will_v the_o visible_a sacrament_n serve_v and_o again_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n unspeakable_o avail_v much_o therefore_o the_o presbyterian_o sacrament_n be_v without_o invisible_a sanctification_n serve_v to_o little_a use_n according_a to_o s._n augustin_n there_o be_v one_o doubt_n which_o i_o have_v in_o this_o matter_n concern_v that_o which_o the_o catholic_n teach_v that_o the_o sacrament_n do_v confer_v grace_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la or_o by_o the_o work_n wrought_v for_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o minister_n affirm_v that_o the_o papist_n intend_v thereby_o to_o show_v that_o the_o sacrament_n produce_v grace_n as_o well_o in_o those_o who_o be_v evil_o dispose_v and_o come_v without_o due_a preparation_n as_o in_o those_o who_o be_v well_o dispose_v and_o come_v well_o prepare_v to_o receive_v they_o which_o i_o just_o esteem_v to_o be_v most_o false_a and_o impious_a therefore_o have_v propose_v this_o difficulty_n to_o a_o catholic_a i_o be_v inform_v by_o he_o that_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a calumny_n of_o the_o minister_n 8._o luther_n de_fw-mi capt_n basil_n cap._n de_fw-fr bapt._n cal._n in_o antid_v sess_v 7._o can_n 5._o &_o 8._o wherein_o they_o follow_v their_o predecessor_n luther_n &_o calvin_n who_o say_v that_o to_o confer_v grace_n by_o the_o work_n wrought_v according_a to_o the_o catholic_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o confer_v grace_n to_o a_o sinner_n without_o faith_n and_o repentance_n but_o the_o catholic_n say_v he_o have_v no_o such_o false_a and_o absurd_a meaning_n they_o only_o by_o that_o phrase_n do_v show_v that_o the_o grace_n which_o christ_n produce_v by_o the_o sacrament_n as_o by_o his_o
baptism_n when_o he_o say_v 5._o aug._n lib_n 1._o de_fw-fr peccat_fw-la mer._n &_o rcmis_fw-la c._n 5._o by_o the_o beget_n flesh_n original_a sin_n be_v only_o contract_v but_o by_o the_o regenerate_a spirit_n remission_n be_v make_v not_o only_o of_o original_n but_o also_o the_o of_o voluntary_a sin_n s._n chrysostom_n do_v more_o large_o illustrate_v this_o matter_n show_v that_o baptism_n do_v not_o only_o take_v away_o sin_n but_o also_o bring_v many_o grace_n &_o privilege_n to_o the_o person_n baptize_v they_o be_v neophito_n chrys_n in_o homil_n ad_fw-la neophito_n say_v he_o not_o only_o make_v free_a but_o holy_a not_o only_o holy_a but_o just_a not_o only_o just_a but_o child_n not_o only_o child_n but_o heir_n not_o only_o heir_n but_o brethren_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o brethren_n of_o christ_n but_o coheire_n not_o only_o coheire_n but_o memher_n not_o only_o the_o temple_n but_o the_o member_n of_o the_o spirit_n you_o see_v how_o many_o be_v the_o privilege_n of_o baptism_n many_o indeed_o think_v that_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n consist_v only_o in_o the_o remissien_n of_o sin_n but_o we_o have_v reckon_v ten_o privilege_n for_o this_o cause_n we_o baptize_v infant_n etc._n etc._n baptizandos_fw-la idem_fw-la in_o homil_n ad_fw-la baptizandos_fw-la thus_o s._n chrysostom_n again_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n show_v that_o albeit_o a_o sinner_n be_v defile_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o iniquity_n and_o tie_v with_o the_o band_n of_o all_o wickedness_n yet_o when_o he_o come_v unto_o this_o bath_n he_o rise_v more_o pure_a than_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o as_o a_o little_a spark_n of_o fire_n cast_v into_o the_o deep_a sea_n be_v not_o leisurely_o but_o instant_o extinguish_v by_o the_o abundance_n of_o water_n &_o forthwith_o it_o be_v show_v to_o be_v nothing_o so_o all_o humane_a malice_n when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o water_n of_o these_o heavenly_a fountain_n be_v more_o easy_o put_v out_o than_o the_o heat_n of_o that_o little_a spark_n and_o lest_o this_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o be_v say_v out_o of_o ambition_n or_o exaggeration_n he_o prove_v all_o from_o these_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n 9.10.11_o 1._o cor._n 9.10.11_o do_v not_o err_v neither_o fornicator_n nor_o idolater_n nor_o adulterer_n etc._n etc._n shall_v possess_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o these_o thing_n indeed_o you_o be_v but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v but_o you_o be_v iustify_v then_o after_o a_o excellent_a discourse_n on_o the_o virtue_n of_o baptism_n he_o show_v why_o it_o be_v not_o call_v the_o laver_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n nor_o the_o laver_n of_o purification_n but_o the_o laver_n of_o regenerion_n because_o say_v he_o it_o do_v not_o only_o forgive_v our_o ssn_n nor_o simple_o purify_v we_o who_o be_v wrap_v up_o in_o wickedness_n but_o it_o make_v we_o as_o if_o we_o be_v bear_v from_o heaven_n more_o testimony_n need_v not_o to_o be_v add_v since_o the_o centurist_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n as_o s._n clement_n 4._o cent._n 2._o cap._n 4._o &_o cent_n 3._o c._n 4._o s._n justin_n cyprian_n and_o many_o other_o maintain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n yea_o they_o maintain_v this_o so_o eager_o that_o some_o of_o they_o do_v brand_v those_o who_o believe_v the_o contrary_a with_o the_o note_n of_o infidelity_n as_o we_o have_v see_v late_o out_o of_o s._n augustin_n 39_o greg._n lib._n 9_o regist_n ep_v 39_o to_o who_o also_o accord_v s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o say_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o unfaithful_a then_o to_o teach_v that_o sin_n be_v only_o superficial_o or_o not_o full_o take_v away_o in_o baptism_n moreover_o this_o truth_n be_v so_o engraft_a in_o the_o heart_n of_o christian_n that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o protestant_n believe_v it_o albeit_o it_o be_v against_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o church_n and_o albeit_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o few_o of_o they_o know_v so_o much_o hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o diverse_a presbyterian_o be_v scandalize_v at_o some_o word_n which_o a_o great_a apostle_n of_o the_o covenant_n speak_v late_o against_o this_o truth_n for_o when_o one_o strive_v to_o clear_v himself_o before_o the_o presbytery_n of_o some_o imputation_n wherewith_o he_o be_v charge_v have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v as_o innocent_a of_o that_o whereof_o he_o be_v accuse_v as_o he_o be_v free_a of_o original_a sin_n by_o baptism_n the_o say_a apostle_n present_o take_v he_o up_o sharp_o &_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o be_v speak_v flat_a popery_n and_o that_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o man_n whosoever_o will_v be_v free_v from_o original_a sin_n so_o long_o as_o they_o live_v whereupon_o many_o to_o who_o ear_n this_o discourse_n come_v take_v great_a offence_n as_o if_o this_o have_v be_v the_o private_a opinion_n of_o that_o minister_n not_o know_v that_o it_o be_v also_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a church_n and_o of_o their_o first_o reformer_n hence_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o this_o article_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a faith_n be_v not_o only_o against_o the_o scripture_n &_o holy_a father_n but_o also_o against_o the_o very_a instinct_n of_o almost_o all_o christian_n and_o beside_o all_o these_o absurdity_n i_o find_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o most_o ancient_a heresy_n defend_v by_o the_o origenist_n who_o think_v as_o s._n epiphanius_n witness_v 64._o epiph._n haer_fw-mi 64._o that_o sin_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o baptism_n but_o only_o cover_v and_o be_v at_o length_n purge_v by_o death_n so_o that_o we_o have_v for_o the_o most_o part_n ancient_a and_o condemn_a heresy_n for_o the_o article_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a faith_n yea_o a_o famous_a protestant_n of_o germany_n condemn_v this_o opinion_n in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o lutheran_n brethren_n as_o a_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n this_o blasphemy_n 18_o shlusselburg_n lib._n 1._o theol._n art_n 18_o say_v he_o of_o the_o calvinist_n that_o baptism_n do_v not_o purge_v sin_n the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o in_o many_o place_n refute_v all_o which_o beside_o many_o other_o consideration_n be_v more_o than_o sufficient_a to_o hinder_v i_o from_o make_v such_o a_o pernicious_a error_n which_o indeed_o make_v baptism_n of_o no_o effect_n a_o article_n of_o my_o faith_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o matter_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o most_o renown_a father_n who_o find_v by_o experience_n the_o wonderful_a effect_n of_o baptism_n 4._o aug._n lib_n 4._o confess_v cap._n 4._o s._n augustin_n do_v relate_v how_o a_o dear_a camer●d_n of_o he_o who_o he_o have_v infect_v with_o the_o error_n and_o heresy_n which_o himself_o follow_v before_o his_o conversion_n fall_v extreme_o sick_a be_v without_o understanding_n or_o sense_n be_v in_o that_o condition_n baptize_v and_o how_o thereafter_o he_o come_v to_o his_o sense_n s._n augustin_n begin_v to_o jest_v he_o with_o the_o baptism_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v without_o understanding_n but_o say_v the_o father_n he_o find_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v it_o and_o abhor_v i_o as_o a_o enemy_n admonish_v i_o with_o a_o wonderful_a liberty_n that_o i_o will_v leave_v off_o to_o speak_v such_o thing_n if_o i_o will_v remain_v a_o friend_n whereat_o s._n augustin_n profess_v that_o he_o much_o admire_v to_o see_v such_o a_o change_n wrought_v in_o the_o mind_n by_o that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o body_n of_o he_o who_o at_o that_o time_n know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v donat_n cypr._n epist_n 2._o ad_fw-la donat_n s._n cyprian_n also_o ingenuous_o confess_v what_o a_o vicious_a man_n himself_o be_v before_o baptism_n and_o how_o sudden_o he_o be_v change_v and_o become_v a_o other_o man_n by_o the_o grace_n which_o he_o receive_v in_o that_o sacrament_n and_o acknowledge_v thankful_o the_o many_o benefit_n which_o christianity_n confer_v upon_o he_o he_o call_v it_o true_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o life_n of_o virtue_n the_o like_a admirable_a change_n be_v also_o wrought_v by_o baptism_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o s._n augustin_n by_o all_o which_o may_v be_v know_v that_o baptism_n not_o only_o purge_v the_o soul_n from_o sin_n and_o adorn_v it_o with_o grace_n but_o also_o it_o change_v admirable_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n the_o false_a supposition_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o that_o original_a sin_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o concupiscence_n shall_v be_v hereafter_o refute_v in_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o covenant_n chap._n xx._n that_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o infant_n which_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o i_o take_v notice_n of_o ā_o other_o dangerous_a error_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o our_o first_o reformer_n and_o be_v yet_o maintain_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o against_o the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n for_o as_o they_o teach_v that_o baptism_n take_v not_o a_o way_n original_a
know_v to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n before_o luther_n although_o they_o have_v leave_v many_o ruinous_a monument_n behind_o they_o since_o luther_n see_v i_o say_v after_o all_o this_o diligence_n we_o can_v find_v out_o this_o visible_a protestant_a church_n and_o yet_o these_o protestant_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v visible_a we_o most_o just_o require_v they_o to_o help_v &_o tell_v we_o where_o their_o church_n be_v in_o what_o kingdom_n province_n or_o city_n and_o if_o they_o can_v do_v this_o we_o may_v just_o conclude_v that_o their_o allegation_n be_v a_o groundless_a imagination_n invent_v to_o deceive_v man_n against_o their_o sense_n &_o understanding_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n but_o wc_n do_v not_o as_o yet_o make_v any_o such_o conclusion_n we_o only_o require_v they_o to_o show_v what_o we_o can_v see_v by_o our_o self_n to_o point_v unto_o we_o where_o their_o church_n be_v that_o we_o may_v fix_v our_o eye_n be_v towards_o that_o place_n and_o for_o satisfaction_n we_o be_v answer_v that_o the_o demand_n be_v unjust_a and_o we_o impertinent_a if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v upon_o their_o bare_a word_n that_o their_o church_n be_v visible_a albeit_o neither_o we_o can_v find_v nor_o they_o can_v tell_v where_o it_o be_v but_o all_o prudent_a and_o indifferent_a man_n will_v think_v it_o much_o more_o injustice_n &_o impertinency_n both_o in_o they_o to_o require_v and_o in_o we_o to_o believe_v that_o their_o church_n be_v visible_a before_o it_o can_v be_v show_v where_o it_o be_v then_o in_o we_o to_o require_v where_o it_o be_v before_o we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v who_o give_v credit_n quick_o 19.4_o ecclesi_n 19.4_o say_v the_o wise_a man_n be_v light_n of_o heart_n any_o heretic_n albeit_o never_o so_o gross_a may_v pretend_v the_o same_o upon_o as_o good_a ground_n and_o yet_o no_o reasonable_a man_n can_v think_v it_o unreasonable_a to_o demand_v where_o their_o church_n be_v before_o we_o believe_v they_o moreover_o this_o be_v not_o only_o a_o just_a and_o pertinent_a but_o also_o a_o most_o necessary_a and_o important_a question_n for_o thereby_o all_o false_a church_n be_v clear_o &_o sensible_o discover_v even_o to_o the_o mean_a capacity_n because_o if_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v perpetual_a as_o have_v be_v evident_o demonstrate_v and_o if_o it_o must_v be_v also_o perpetual_o visible_a as_o these_o protestant_n of_o who_o we_o now_o speak_v do_v grant_v than_o it_o follow_v when_o ever_o a_o new_a church_n or_o congregation_n arise_v with_o a_o new_a confession_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o see_v nor_o know_v before_o that_o that_o church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v always_o both_o perpetual_a &_o visibie_a for_o this_o cause_n the_o holy_a father_n do_v urge_v this_o question_n so_o hardly_o by_o which_o they_o confound_v all_o heretical_a &_o new_a upstart_n church_n and_o whereas_o some_o protestant_n do_v allege_v 12._o du_fw-fr mou_fw-mi lin_v in_o his_o noweauté_fw-fr cont_n card._n peron_n c._n 12._o that_o this_o question_n be_v a_o curiosity_n of_o history_n a_o old_a question_n which_o will_v require_v tventie_a year_n study_v it_o be_v such_o a_o curiosiry_n of_o history_n that_o it_o can_v be_v find_v in_o none_o or_o else_o the_o laborious_a centurist_n have_v not_o omit_v it_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o old_a question_n but_o be_v never_o well_o answer_v and_o will_v yet_o require_v a_o new_a answer_n as_o shall_v appear_v by_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o all_o the_o old_a answer_n and_o if_o it_o require_v twenty_o year_n study_n they_o can_v complain_v who_o have_v get_v now_o a_o hundred_o year_n to_o find_v out_o a_o answer_n to_o it_o but_o to_o speak_v no_o more_o of_o these_o shift_n i_o shall_v show_v how_o diverse_a protestant_n be_v urge_v by_o that_o fata_fw-la question_n make_v many_o essay_n to_o answer_v it_o and_o yet_o can_v make_v appear_v the_o visibility_n of_o their_o church_n before_o luther_n they_o run_v almost_o all_o the_o world_n over_o to_o find_v their_o church_n they_o begin_v their_o journey_n in_o france_n strive_a to_o prove_v it_o in_o the_o waldenses_n &_o albigenses_n 2._o from_o france_n they_o go_v over_o to_o england_n to_o prove_v it_o in_o the_o wicleffist_n 3._o from_o england_n they_o pass_v to_o boheme_n to_o find_v it_o among_o the_o hussists_n 4._o from_o boheme_n they_o travail_v to_o greece_n and_o from_o that_o to_o aethiopia_n &_o armenia_n pretend_v that_o th●se_a nation_n be_v protestant_n 5._o have_v thus_o weary_v themselves_o all_o in_o vain_a the_o most_o learned_a be_v glad_a to_o come_v back_o again_o to_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o their_o church_n before_o luther_n be_v in_o the_o very_a heart_n of_o popery_n 6._o find_v that_o their_o new_a coin_a distinction_n of_o fundamental_a point_n involve_v they_o in_o great_a labyrinth_n and_o that_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v they_o for_o their_o associate_n they_o pass_v from_o the_o late_a unto_o the_o pure_a time_n before_o s._n gregory_n allege_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n &_o holy_a father_n be_v protestant_n 7._o after_o they_o have_v make_v this_o monstruous_a leap_n of_o 900._o year_n and_o there_o find_v both_o pastor_n &_o people_n at_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o the_o protestant_n abhor_v as_o idolatry_n they_o run_v to_o their_o last_o shift_n which_o be_v to_o get_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n and_o hide_v themselves_o in_o the_o hole_n of_o invisibiliy_v these_o many_o different_a answer_n show_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n have_v no_o great_a certainty_n of_o its_o pedigree_n i_o shall_v brief_o show_v you_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o answer_n by_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o visible_a before_o luther_n and_o hereby_o their_o first_o start_v hole_n shall_v be_v either_o so_o stop_v or_o lay_v that_o they_o can_v escape_v this_o way_n chap._n xxv_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o visible_a before_o luther_n neither_o in_o the_o waldenses_n albigenses_n wiclifist_n nor_o husit_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n may_v be_v continue_v in_o the_o waldenses_n and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v of_o the_o albigenses_n and_o the_o rest_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o protestant_n 1._o that_o the_o waldenses_n have_v ever_o continue_v since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o first_o undeniable_a principle_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o the_o waldenses_n be_v entire_o of_o that_o faith_n which_o the_o protestant_n do_v now_o or_o do_v profess_v that_o be_v believe_v any_o of_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n for_o without_o this_o whole_a agreement_n the_o waldenses_n can_v not_o be_v a_o protestant_a church_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o second_o principle_n above_o settle_a now_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o show_v either_o of_o these_o two_o for_o first_o concern_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o waldenses_n all_o history_n do_v affirm_v that_o they_o begin_v in_o the_o twelve_o age_n and_o that_o their_o author_n be_v one_o waldo_n a_o merchant_n of_o lion_n about_o the_o year_n 1160._o who_o the_o centurist_n place_n in_o the_o 12._o century_n how_o can_v it_o be_v then_o prove_v 8._o cent._n 12._o c._n 8._o that_o the_o waldenses_n have_v continue_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n see_v their_o author_n who_o be_v before_o a_o catholic_a &_o a_o laique_n live_v near_o 12._o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n suppose_v then_o that_o waldo_n become_v a_o protestant_n after_o he_o have_v be_v before_o a_o catholic_a the_o question_n remain_v where_o be_v the_o protestant_a church_n before_o waldo_n the_o true_a church_n must_v be_v perpetual_a second_o as_o the_o waldenses_n do_v not_o continue_v since_o the_o apostle_n so_o neither_o do_v they_o agree_v intir_o with_o protestant_n 224._o luth._o in_o colloq_fw-la c_o de_n sacr._n calvin_n epist_n 224._o in_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o religion_n to_o wit_n in_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o if_o we_o believe_v luther_n testimony_n and_o if_o we_o will_v trust_v calvin_n they_o hold_v also_o the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o popish_a sense_n of_o transubstantiation_n therefore_o such_o man_n can_v not_o be_v protestant_n 3._o protest_v apol._n tract_n 2._o c._n 2._o sect_n 3._o sub_fw-la 3._o three_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n in_o diverse_a other_o point_n as_o about_o the_o number_n &_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o vow_n of_o chastity_n the_o necessity_n of_o child_n baptism_n they_o begin_v a_o kind_n of_o religious_a order_n for_o which_o they_o be_v call_v the_o poor_a man_n of_o lion_n and_o seek_v confirmation_n of_o it_o from_o pope_n innocent_a
beg_v &_o many_o other_o seditious_a error_n he_o teach_v all_o which_o show_n that_o wiclefs_n church_n which_o raise_v so_o late_o &_o decay_v so_o quick_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n found_v by_o his_o apostle_n which_o must_v endure_v for_o ever_o and_o that_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o associate_n for_o the_o short_a time_n they_o endure_v be_v protestant_n therefore_o 263._o fox_n ut_fw-la sup_n huniph_n in_o vita_fw-la juelli_fw-la p._n 263._o the_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v continue_v visible_a in_o they_o albeit_o m._n fox_n d._n humphrey_n and_o other_o false_o so_o pretend_v hussit_n from_o england_n we_o must_v follow_v some_o protestant_n to_o bohemia_n where_o they_o undertake_v to_o prove_v their_o church_n visible_a in_o the_o hussit_n these_o man_n have_v their_o origine_fw-la from_o i._n husse_n who_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 1405._o that_o be_v some_o few_o year_n after_o wiclef_n he_o be_v first_o a_o catholic_a &_o a_o priest_n before_o he_o become_v author_n of_o his_o sect_n therefore_o the_o protestant_n can_v by_o this_o new-upstart_n and_o his_o congregation_n although_o they_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v protestant_n continue_v the_o visibility_n of_o their_o church_n unto_o the_o apostle_n 2._o husse_n hold_v not_o the_o protestant_a confession_n of_o faith_n for_o m._n fox_n give_v this_o testimony_n of_o he_o what_o do_v the_o popish_a faith_n define_v of_o transubstantiation_n 11._o fox_n in_o apocal._n cap._n 11._o which_o he_o do_v not_o confirm_v who_o say_v mass_n more_o religious_o than_o he_o who_o keep_v more_o chaste_o the_o vow_n of_o priestly_a single_a life_n yea_o he_o affirm_v also_o that_o husse_v maintain_v also_o free_a will_n justification_n by_o work_n merit_n veneration_n of_o image_n and_o other_o point_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n which_o show_n that_o husse_n be_v no_o good_a protestant_n 258._o luth._o in_o collo_fw-la cap_fw-es de_fw-es anti_fw-la christo_fw-la fox_n act_n &_o mon._n p._n 190._o &_o p._n 258._o therefore_o luther_n say_v that_o the_o papist_n burn_v husse_v when_o he_o do_v not_o go_v so_o much_o as_o a_o finger_n breadth_n from_o popery_n and_o last_o of_o all_o he_o maintain_v almost_o all_o the_o same_o error_n with_o wiclef_n which_o be_v condemn_v both_o by_o protestant_n &_o catholic_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n how_o m_n fox_n call_v he_o a_o most_o holy_a martyr_n &_o his_o disciple_n defender_n of_o the_o gospel_n chap._n xxvi_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n have_v not_o continue_v visible_a in_o the_o grecian_n armenian_n nor_o aethiopian_n albeit_o the_o grecian_n be_v grant_v now_o to_o be_v protestant_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o always_o so_o and_o therefore_o protestant_n can_v continue_v the_o visibility_n of_o their_o church_n by_o they_o for_o they_o be_v at_o least_o seven_o or_o 8_o hundred_o year_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o witness_v the_o first_o eight_o general_n counsel_n all_o hold_v in_o grece_n and_o approve_v by_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o revolt_n be_v make_v by_o the_o grecian_n deny_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n they_o be_v unite_v again_o diverse_a time_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o last_o in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n ult._n council_n florent_fw-la sess_v ult._n this_o show_v that_o the_o grecian_n have_v not_o always_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o the_o perpetual_a church_n which_o we_o be_v now_o seek_v 2._o since_o the_o tim_n that_o they_o begin_v their_o schism_n they_o be_v not_o protestant_n for_o they_o have_v reject_v the_o protestant_n communion_n and_o disprove_v their_o co_n fession_n etc._n censura_fw-la orietal_n eccles_n c._n 7.10.12.13_o etc._n etc._n as_o be_v well_o know_v by_o the_o censure_n which_o they_o have_v publish_v against_o it_o where_o they_o maintain_v mass_n transubstantiation_n 7._o sacrament_n invocation_n of_o ●aints_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n last_o they_o hold_v a_o error_n condemn_v both_o by_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v only_o from_o the_o father_n &_o not_o from_o the_o son_n therefore_o the_o protestant_n can_v continue_v their_o visible_a church_n by_o the_o grecian_n who_o be_v for_o many_o age_n catholic_n who_o never_o be_v nor_o yet_o be_v protestant_n and_o be_v know_v to_o this_o day_n for_o a_o great_a part_n to_o be_v roman_a catholic_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o armenian_n for_o first_o suppose_v they_o be_v now_o protestant_n they_o be_v not_o always_o of_o that_o religion_n for_o they_o remain_v catholic_n 685._o baronnius_fw-la a_o 685._o ever_o till_o about_o the_o 7._o age_n therefore_o the_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v continue_v in_o they_o 2._o they_o never_o hold_v the_o protestant_a confession_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o maintain_v the_o real_a presence_n the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a invocation_n of_o saint_n 3._o they_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o grecian_n menor_n council_n flor._n de_fw-fr instruct_v a_o menor_n in_o he_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o last_o since_o their_o fall_v away_o they_o hold_v error_n which_o be_v condemn_v both_o by_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n for_o they_o deny_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n they_o confound_v the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n and_o reiterate_v baptism_n all_o which_o do_v show_v that_o they_o neither_o be_v nor_o be_v protestant_n from_o greece_n and_o armenia_n we_o must_v now_o at_o length_n go_v to_o aethiopia_n where_o m._n du_fw-fr moulin_n affirm_v the_o protestant_a church_n be_v 12._o du_n moulin_n contr_n card._n peron_n e._n 12._o before_o luther_n but_o suppose_v they_o be_v now_o protestant_n they_o be_v not_o always_o so_o for_o near_o the_o space_n of_o 5._o hundred_o year_n they_o be_v catholic_n at_o which_o time_n they_o begin_v to_o be_v corrupt_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o eutiche_n therefore_o the_o protestant_a church_n for_o 5._o hundred_o year_n be_v not_o visible_a in_o they_o 2._o since_o their_o schism_n they_o never_o believe_v intir_o any_o protestant_a confession_n and_o never_o hold_v justification_n by_o faith_n only_o nor_o godingus_n l_o 1_o de_fw-fr reb_fw-mi abyssi_fw-la nor_o 3._o they_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n against_o protestant_n in_o the_o 7._o sacrament_n invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a mass_n transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n as_o d._n stratford_n show_v out_o of_o their_o own_o author_n they_o call_v the_o pope_n head_n of_o all_o bishop_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o letter_n of_o their_o emperor_n to_o pope_n clement_n the_o 7._o whereof_o a_o part_n be_v recite_v in_o the_o upplement_n of_o spondan●s_n 1524._o sponda_n in_o clement_n 7._o ●uno_fw-it 1524._o and_o they_o have_v offer_v diverse_a time_n obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n last_o they_o hold_v diverse_a error_n which_o protestant_n can_v approve_v for_o they_o deny_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n 18._o godingus_n lib._n 1_o ●e_z rebus_fw-la abyssinor_a c._n 18._o with_o the_o grecian_n they_o acknowledge_v one_o only_o will_v in_o christ_n with_o the_o mono_n helity_n and_o one_o only_a nature_n in_o he_o with_o the_o eutichian_o and_o with_o the_o jew_n they_o abstain_v from_o certain_a meat_n and_o observe_v circumcision_n therefore_o the_o protestant_n can_v continue_v their_o church_n by_o the_o aethiopian_n nor_o by_o any_o of_o their_o for●er_a pretence_n which_o serve_v for_o nothing_o but_o to_o make_v it_o visible_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a protestant_n church_n in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o no_o age_n or_o time_n before_o luther_n how_o much_o less_o for_o the_o whole_a time_n between_o the_o apostle_n and_o luther_n yea_o albeit_o the_o wa●denses_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n above_o name_v to_o who_o the_o protestant_n do_v pretend_v be_v grant_v to_o have_v believe_v the_o protestant_a confession_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a they_o believe_v it_o not_o yet_o the_o protestant_a church_n can_v not_o be_v continue_v by_o any_o or_o all_o of_o they_o because_o they_o do_v not_o continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o live_v at_o diverse_a time_n without_o any_o society_n or_o lineal_a descent_n hang_v often_o asunder_o whole_a age_n one_o from_o a_o other_o and_o the_o first_o be_v long_o decay_v before_o the_o other_o do_v appear_v for_o this_o cause_n some_o learned_a protestant_n see_v the_o impossibility_n of_o continue_v the_o visibility_n of_o their_o church_n by_o such_o break_a and_o vanish_v troop_n and_o be_v ashamed_a to_o claim_v as_o member_n of_o their_o church_n such_o erroneous_a person_n or_o notorious_a heretic_n have_v undertake_v by_o two_o other_o way_n to_o show_v their_o church_n to_o
record_v in_o the_o scripture_n not_o equal_a in_o glory_n but_o more_o inglorious_a than_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n have_v be_v even_o since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n for_o ever_o since_o that_o time_n the_o jew_n have_v profess_v their_o religion_n and_o have_v visible_a synagogue_n in_o diverse_a famous_a nation_n whereas_o the_o presbyterian_o make_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v invisible_a for_o many_o age_n of_o that_o time_n in_o which_o not_o one_o can_v be_v find_v who_o have_v the_o courage_n or_o devotion_n to_o profess_v the_o true_a religion_n now_o what_o can_v be_v more_o against_o the_o sripture_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n than_o this_o wicked_a device_n what_o more_o opprobrious_a to_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o these_o time_n god_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n 2.9_o aggai_n 2.9_o say_v by_o the_o prophet_n aggai_n the_o glory_n of_o this_o late_a house_n shall_v be_v great_a than_o of_o the_o former_a but_o if_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v be_v so_o many_o age_n invisible_a it_o have_v be_v more_o inglorious_a than_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v all_o that_o time_n visible_a christ_n be_v call_v by_o s_n paul_n 8.6_o heb._n 8.6_o the_o mediator_n of_o a_o better_a covenant_n which_o be_v establish_v upon_o better_a promise_n but_o by_o the_o presbyterian_o invisible_a church_n he_o be_v make_v mediator_n of_o a_o worse_a covenant_n and_o to_o have_v fail_v of_o his_o promise_n s_o hierom_n say_v 6._o hieron_n count_v lucifer_n cap._n 6._o nimium_fw-la prophani_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n they_o be_v too_o profane_a who_o affirm_v the_o jew_n have_v more_o synagogue_n than_o the_o christian_n have_v church_n therefore_o they_o may_v be_v call_v most_o profane_a who_o affirm_v the_o jew_n have_v many_o synagogue_n and_o deny_v the_o christian_n to_o have_v have_v so_o much_o as_o one_o church_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n whence_o this_o opinion_n give_v great_a advantage_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o infidel_n against_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o they_o may_v just_o pretend_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n if_o it_o be_v so_o many_o age_n invisible_a can_v not_o be_v the_o true_a church_n &_o kingdom_n of_o the_o messiah_n which_o the_o prophet_n foretell_v clear_o shall_v be_v eternal_a conspicuous_a and_o glorious_a and_o that_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n who_o have_v fail_v so_o palpable_o of_o his_o promise_n yea_o this_o opinion_n be_v very_o dangerous_a to_o protestant_n so_o that_o it_o have_v make_v some_o to_o stumble_v at_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o it_o have_v draw_v other_o into_o flat_a atheism_n sebastian_z castalio_n professor_n of_o basil_n have_v cite_v some_o clear_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o king_n &_o nation_n write_v very_o perplex_o unto_o edward_n the_o 6._o king_n of_o england_n lat_fw-la sebast_n cast_v in_o praef_n biblior_fw-la lat_fw-la true_o say_v he_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o either_o these_o thing_n will_v be_v or_o that_o they_o have_v be_v or_o god_n be_v to_o be_v accuse_v of_o a●_n lie_v if_o any_o man_n say_v they_o have_v be_v i_o inquire_v of_o he_o when_o i_o inquire_v how_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o piety_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o be_v eternal_a and_o more_o abundant_a than_o the_o water_n of_o the_o sea_n be_v not_o altogether_o perf_n ct_n 647._o osiand_v in_o epitome_n count_v 16._o part_n 2._o p._n 647._o and_o can_v so_o soon_o decay_v by_o which_o word_n he_o show_v what_o stick_v in_o his_o stomach_n david_n george_n a_o protestant_n of_o holland_n proceed_v further_o &_o upon_o this_o ground_n of_o the_o visible_a decay_n of_o the_o church_n blaspheme_v against_o christ_n say_v if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n have_v be_v true_a the_o church_n which_o they_o plant_v have_v endure_v 818._o idem_fw-la p._n 818._o and_o here_o upon_o he_o become_v a_o impure_a apostate_n from_o the_o christian_a religion_n adam_n neuserus_fw-la the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o heydelberg_n of_o a_o minister_n become_v a_o turk_n and_o be_v circumcise_v at_o constantinople_n 5._o prot._n apolog._n tract_n 2._o cap._n 1._o sect_n 5._o these_o and_o some_o other_o example_n may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o protestant_n apology_n by_o all_o which_o may_v be_v see_v how_o false_a dangerous_a &_o pernicious_a this_o opinion_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n be_v against_o a_o most_o clear_a truth_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v hide_v therefore_o as_o s._n augustin_n do_v conclude_v against_o the_o donatist_n 104._o aug._n li._n 2._o cont_n patil_o c._n 104._o in_o these_o word_n the_o church_n have_v this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v she_o be_v then_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o sect_n of_o donatus_n be_v unknown_a to_o all_o nation_n that_o then_o can_v be_v she_o so_o we_o may_v conclude_v more_o forcible_o against_o the_o presbyterian_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v or_o invisible_a she_o be_v then_o know_v or_o visible_a to_o all_o nation_n the_o protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n be_v invisible_a and_o unknown_a to_o all_o nation_n as_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v confess_v therefore_o the_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v she_o chap._n xxix_o that_o albeit_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v invisible_a yet_o the_o protestant_n have_v not_o invisible_a church_n before_o luther_n it_o have_v be_v already_o prove_v that_o albeit_o the_o protestant_n have_v have_v a_o invisible_a church_n before_o luther_n yet_o it_o can_v not_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o must_v be_v alway_n visible_a now_o remain_v to_o be_v show_v the_o second_o thing_n which_o be_v undertake_v above_o to_o wit_n that_o albeit_o a_o invisible_a church_n be_v sufficient_a yet_o the_o protestant_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o that_o nature_n before_o luther_n and_o so_o they_o succumb_v as_o well_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la as_o they_o have_v do_v de_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o consequent_o this_o device_n of_o a_o invisible_a church_n for_o two_o reason_n will_v serve_v they_o to_o no_o purpose_n which_o be_v show_v thus_o a_o invisible_a protestant_a church_n be_v a_o church_n which_o believe_v the_o protestant_a faith_n in_o their_o heart_n albeit_o they_o make_v no_o external_a profession_n of_o it_o but_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la there_o be_v no_o church_n before_o luther_n which_o believe_v the_o protestant_a confession_n of_o faith_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a protestant_n church_n before_o luth_n r._n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a because_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n between_o a_o visible_a and_o a_o invisible_a church_n that_o the_o first_o profess_v the_o faith_n the_o other_o profess_v it_o not_o but_o they_o both_o agree_v in_o this_o to_o have_v inward_o the_o faith_n without_o which_o there_o can_v be_v any_o church_n therefore_o a_o invisible_a protestant_a church_n be_v a_o church_n which_o believe_v inward_o the_o protestant_n faith_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v of_o the_o time_n immediate_o precede_v luther_n preach_v for_o either_o luther_n himself_o before_o he_o begin_v to_o oppose_v the_o pope_n be_v a_o member_n of_o this_o lurk_a protestan_a church_n believe_v the_o protestant_a confession_n or_o these_o who_o adhere_v to_o he_o be_v member_n of_o it_o or_o some_o other_o who_o do_v nor_o join_v with_o he_o and_o beside_o these_o no_o other_o can_v be_v find_v or_o imagine_v but_o none_o of_o these_o can_v be_v say_v for_o luther_n be_v avowed_o confess_v by_o himself_o and_o all_o man_n lat_fw-la in_o ad_fw-la lat_fw-la to_o have_v be_v a_o roman_a catholic_n a_o priest_n a_o friar_n of_o s._n augustins_n order_n and_z as_o himself_o acknowledge_v say_v mass_n devout_o and_o honour_v the_o pope_n in_o his_o heart_n therefore_o luther_n before_o he_o oppose_v the_o pope_n do_v not_o believe_v inward_o the_o protestant_n faith_n and_o be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o protestant's_n lurk_v invisible_a church_n but_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a visible_a church_n but_o so_o be_v melanchton_n carolstadius_n the_o saxon_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n who_o follow_v he_o papist_n or_o priest_n profess_v the_o roman_a religion_n &_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o protestant_n till_o luther_n teach_v they_o therefore_o all_o these_o who_o adhere_v to_o luther_n new_a doctrine_n be_v before_o that_o time_n not_o lurk_v protestant_n but_o profesed_a papist_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o member_n of_o that_o suppose_a lurk_v protestant_n church_n who_o do_v not_o join_v with_o luther_n for_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o they_o shall_v and_o will_v have_v come_v out_o of_o their_o lurk_a hole_n so_o soon_o as_o luther_n begin_v to_o preach_v and_o get_v the_o protection_n of_o secular_a prince_n for_o then_o there_o
be_v no_o more_o fear_n of_o persecution_n which_o be_v the_o only_a reason_n why_o these_o man_n do_v not_o profess_v their_o religion_n and_o therefore_o that_o be_v take_v away_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o such_o invisible_a protestant_n they_o will_v have_v show_v themselves_o visible_a acknowledge_v their_o brethren_n run_v and_o join_v hand_n with_o they_o and_o say_v behold_v this_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o we_o alway'_v believe_v although_o we_o do_v not_o or_o dare_v not_o profess_v it_o but_o no_o such_o person_n do_v appear_v when_o they_o may_v safe_o and_o aught_o in_o all_o duty_n to_o have_v appear_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o lurk_v protestant_n church_n before_o luther_n and_o consequent_o the_o protestant_n have_v no_o church_n at_o all_o before_o he_o neither_o visible_a nor_o invisible_a this_o may_v be_v yet_o further_o illustrate_v &_o confirm_v for_o there_o may_v be_v conceive_v two_o kind_n of_o invisible_a protestant_a church_n the_o first_o be_v a_o church_n which_o believe_v in_o their_o heart_n the_o protestant_a faith_n and_o yet_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o contrary_a religion_n to_o wit_n of_o popery_n the_o second_o be_v a_o company_n of_o people_n believe_v also_o internal_o the_o same_o faith_n but_o make_v no_o profession_n of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n and_o between_o these_o two_o extreme_n there_o be_v no_o medium_n but_o the_o protestant_n have_v neither_o of_o these_o two_o invisible_a church_n before_o luther_n therefore_o they_o have_v none_o at_o all_o not_o the_o first_o which_o although_o they_o have_v can_v not_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n or_o a_o society_n of_o faithful_a christian_n but_o rather_o be_v a_o miserable_a crew_n of_o dissemble_a sycophant_n for_o so_o they_o behove_v to_o be_v who_o believe_v one_o thing_n &_o profess_v the_o contrary_a which_o they_o think_v gross_a superstition_n &_o idolatry_n not_o the_o first_o i_o say_v for_o such_o a_o dissemble_a church_n behove_v to_o believe_v the_o protestant_n faith_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o profess_v the_o contrary_a against_o their_o conscience_n but_o there_o be_v none_o before_o luther_n who_o believe_v the_o protestant_a faith_n in_o their_o heart_n etc._n etc._n because_o luther_n himself_o believe_v the_o roman_a catholic_a faith_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o of_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a evidence_n than_o his_o own_o testimony_n against_o himself_o for_o he_o profess_v that_o he_o honour_v the_o pope_n for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o thought_n that_o he_o will_v have_v be_v sever_v from_o god_n if_o he_o have_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n therefore_o luther_n be_v not_o a_o dissemble_a protestant_n but_o rather_o a_o sincere_a papist_n before_o he_o begin_v to_o oppose_v the_o pope_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o before_o he_o who_o believe_v the_o protestant_a faith_n &_o profess_v the_o contrary_a because_o his_o follower_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n till_o luther_n teach_v it_o and_o show_v they_o the_o light_n this_o be_v witness_v by_o prime_a protestant_n who_o say_v it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o think_v 131._o cont._n shlus_n in_o theol._n cal._n l._n 2._o f._n 131._o that_o any_o man_n before_o luther_n do_v attayn_v unto_o the_o true_a doctrine_n or_o that_o he_o receive_v it_o from_o other_o and_o not_o other_o from_o he_o that_o all_o the_o world_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o more_o than_o cimmerian_a darkness_n that_o luther_n be_v send_v to_o dispel_v it_o and_o to_o restore_v the_o light_n of_o true_a doctrine_n beside_o that_o chief_a article_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o be_v altogether_o unknown_a before_o luther_n 402._o fox_n acts._n p._n 402._o so_o that_o m._n fox_n affirm_v that_o luther_n by_o open_v that_o vein_n which_o lie_v a_o long_a time_n hide_v overturn_v the_o foundation_n of_o popery_n m._n wotton_n aver_v that_o luther_n may_v true_o glory_n that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o who_o teach_v christ_n especial_o concern_v that_o principal_a euangel●cal_n doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o rom._n wotson_n in_o exam._n tit_n rom._n therefore_o say_v he_o it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n to_o luther_n to_o have_v be_v a_o son_n without_o a_o father_n and_o a_o disciple_n without_o a_o master_n all_o which_o testimony_n do_v evince_n that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o dissemble_a protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n neither_o as_o i_o conceive_v will_v any_o judicious_a protestant_n plead_v much_o for_o such_o a_o church_n which_o although_o it_o have_v be_v can_v not_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o rather_o the_o synaguogue_n of_o satan_n and_o so_o not_o the_o true_a church_n which_o we_o be_v now_o search_v after_o neither_o have_v the_o protestant_n that_o other_o kind_n of_o invisible_a church_n before_o luther_n which_o believe_v the_o protestant_a faith_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o make_v no_o profession_n of_o the_o contrary_n for_o first_o luther_n &_o his_o follower_n do_v not_o believe_v it_o till_o he_o oppose_v the_o pope_n as_o have_v be_v present_o prove_v second_o they_o profess_v themselves_o both_o by_o word_n &_o action_n to_o be_v roman_a catholic_n and_o so_o make_v profession_n of_o a_o religion_n contrary_a to_o the_o protestant_n therefore_o in_o both_o these_o condition_n this_o invisible_a protestant_a church_n be_v visible_o deficient_a and_o consequent_o there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o a_o invisible_a church_n before_o luther_n neither_o a_o sincere_a nor_o a_o dissemble_a church_n if_o we_o will_v judge_v of_o it_o by_o the_o person_n who_o m●de_v it_o visible_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o lurk_v protestant's_n for_o they_o will_v have_v show_v themselves_o when_o there_o be_v no_o more_o danger_n for_o they_o as_o have_v be_v say_v which_o they_o d●d_v not_o or_o if_o they_o be_v lurk_v they_o be_v still_o lurk_v and_o will_v ever_o lurk_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o there_o be_v no_o more_o reason_n that_o they_o shall_v appear_v at_o any_o time_n hereafter_o then_o now_o or_o in_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n therefore_o this_o invisible_a protestant_a church_n be_v a_o mere_a chime●a_n &_o fiction_n without_o all_o ground_n and_o against_o sense_n &_o experience_n the_o independent_o who_o arise_v within_o these_o twelve_o year_n or_o thereabouts_o and_o who_o before_o have_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n violent_a presbyterian_o may_v pretend_v upon_o the_o same_o groundless_a fancy_n that_o their_o church_n have_v alway'_v endure_v invisible_o the_o same_o may_v also_o pretend_v the_o quaker_n who_o be_v more_o late_o spring_v up_o but_o if_o any_o of_o these_o congregation_n be_v so_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o make_v that_o pretext_n which_o they_o may_v as_o lawful_o do_v as_o any_o other_o protestant's_n who_o will_v be_v so_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o believe_v they_o or_o who_o can_v be_v so_o simple_a as_o to_o be_v decive_v by_o they_o the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o those_o congregation_n be_v so_o well_o know_v &_o so_o late_a and_o fresh_a in_o all_o man_n memory_n in_o the_o presbyterian_a sense_n any_o person_n although_o never_o so_o great_a a_o liar_n may_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n for_o albeit_o he_o foretell_v thing_n never_o so_o false_a which_o never_o come_v to_o pass_v yea_o that_o fall_v out_o quite_o contrary_a he_o may_v say_v with_o the_o presbyterian_o they_o be_v all_o fulfil_v but_o invisible_o now_o what_o be_v more_o foolish_a than_o this_o device_n what_o will_v be_v more_o ridiculous_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o jew_n and_o pagan_n and_o more_o injurious_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o if_o they_o will_v demand_v how_o be_v the_o prophecy_n concern_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o christ_n church_n fulfil_v how_o be_v his_o clear_a promise_n to_o his_o church_n keep_v and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o swer_v as_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v that_o they_o be_v all_o fulfil_v and_o keep_v but_o invisible_o what_o can_v more_o confirm_v these_o man_n in_o their_o infidelity_n than_o this_o answer_n what_o can_v make_v the_o christian_a religion_n appear_v to_o they_o to_o be_v more_o false_a and_o ridiculous_a s._n augustin_n do_v far_o otherwise_o understand_v the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o church_n for_o write_v against_o the_o donatist_n on_o this_o same_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v let_v we_o hear_v some_o few_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o psalm_n so_o long_o ago_o sing_v and_o foretell_v and_o let_v we_o now_o with_o joy_n see_v they_o fulfil_v again_o eccl._n aug_n unit_fw-la eccl._n hear_v this_o out_o of_o the_o divine_a book_n how_o it_o be_v foretell_v and_o see_v now_o in_o the_o world_n how_o it_o be_v at_o complished_a therefore_o as_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o make_v a_o prophesy_v true_a but_o
by_o fulfil_v it_o so_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o know_v it_o to_o be_v fulfil_v but_o by_o visible_a and_o sensible_a performance_n of_o it_o by_o what_o be_v say_v may_v be_v easy_o see_v that_o the_o complaint_n of_o elias_n which_o be_v alway_n in_o the_o puritan_n mouth_n make_v nothing_o for_o their_o invisible_a church_n before_o luther_n for_o first_o elias_n be_v only_o speak_v of_o israel_n as_o a_o famous_a protestant_n confess_v 17._o enoch_n cleopham_n in_o antidote_n schism_n p._n 17._o in_o these_o word_n our_o unskilful_a reformer_n say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a in_o the_o time_n of_o elias_n but_o the_o holy_a spirit_n testify_v that_o he_o speak_v this_o of_o israel_n and_o not_o of_o juda_n for_o he_o know_v that_o good_a josaphat_n be_v reign_v in_o juda_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o visible_a there_o but_o also_o flourish_v in_o great_a piety_n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o evil_a parity_n to_o say_v the_o jewish_a synagogue_n be_v invisible_a a_o short_a time_n in_o one_o province_n albeit_o it_o be_v visible_a at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o another_o therefore_o the_o christian_a church_n may_v be_v or_o be_v invisible_a throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n &_o above_o 2._o these_o who_o be_v lurk_v in_o the_o time_n of_o elias_n bow_v not_o their_o knee_n to_o baal_n which_o if_o they_o have_v do_v they_o have_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o invisible_a church_n of_o god_n but_o all_o the_o suppose_a invisible_a protestant_n as_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n bow_v their_o knee_n to_o the_o mass_n which_o they_o esteem_v idolatry_n as_o have_v be_v show_v therefore_o they_o can_v not_o be_v the_o invisible_a church_n of_o god_n 3._o although_o these_o good_a israelite_n be_v invisible_a to_o elias_n at_o such_o a_o distance_n when_o he_o flee_v yet_o he_o know_v many_o of_o they_o to_o be_v visible_a both_o to_o other_o 18.13_o 3._o king_n 18.13_o and_o among_o themselves_o for_o abdias_n tell_v he_o a_o little_a before_o that_o he_o have_v hide_v 100_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o two_o cave_n where_o he_o feed_v they_o but_o all_o protestant_n before_o luther_n be_v invisible_a both_o to_o other_o and_o themselves_o for_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o person_n know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o protestant_n before_o luther_n teach_v that_o religion_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v 4._o although_o the_o whole_a jewish_a synagogue_n have_v be_v invisible_a which_o be_v most_o false_a yet_o it_o follow_v not_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n may_v be_v or_o be_v so_o too_o for_o this_o as_o s._n paul_n testify_v be_v found_v upon_o better_a promise_n 5._o 8.6_o heb._n 8.6_o salvation_n be_v not_o altogether_o tie_v before_o christ_n to_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n for_o there_o be_v some_o faithful_a gentile_n as_o melchisedeck_v job_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o presbyterian_o by_o make_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n to_o be_v invisible_a for_o many_o age_n take_v away_o all_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n which_o only_o can_v be_v have_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n last_o albeit_o all_o the_o faithful_a both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n have_v be_v invisible_a in_o the_o time_n of_o elias_n yet_o this_o will_v make_v nothing_o for_o protestant_n unless_o they_o have_v be_v also_o invisible_a before_o luther_n but_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la there_o be_v no_o lurk_a protestant_n before_o he_o as_o have_v be_v clear_o prove_v therefore_o although_o the_o church_n can_v be_v invisible_a yet_o the_o protestant_n have_v not_o invisible_a church_n before_o luther_n and_o beside_o the_o reason_n bring_v above_o against_o this_o invisible_a church_n it_o may_v seem_v true_o strange_a that_o for_o so_o many_o age_n not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o person_n of_o it_o be_v hear_v of_o or_o know_v never_o so_o much_o as_o one_o false_a brother_n can_v be_v find_v among_o they_o to_o reveal_v they_o and_o which_o be_v most_o strange_a when_o this_o invisible_a church_n become_v visible_a not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o person_n do_v appear_v who_o have_v be_v a_o lurk_a member_n of_o it_o such_o groundless_a conceit_n require_v strong_a imagination_n to_o fancy_v they_o but_o much_o more_o credulous_a heart_n to_o believe_v they_o wherefore_o elias_n complaint_n for_o many_o reason_n make_v nothing_o for_o protestant_n but_o be_v cleary_a against_o they_o so_o be_v also_o their_o other_o refuge_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o predestinate_a which_o they_o say_v be_v invisible_a before_o luther_n for_o 1._o there_o be_v no_o such_o church_n because_o christ_n church_n be_v a_o congregation_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n as_o well_o reprobate_a as_o predestinate_a 13._o math._n ch_n 3._o &_o ch_n 13._o there_o be_v in_o his_o floor_n both_o wheat_n and_o chaff_n and_o in_o his_o field_n both_o corn_n &_o tare_n 2._o the_o predestinate_a be_v as_o visible_a as_o the_o reprobate_n s._n peter_n be_v as_o visible_a as_o judas_n 3._o although_o it_o be_v grant_v there_o have_v be_v some_o invisible_a predestinate_a before_o luther_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o can_v be_v protestant_n because_o none_o believe_v the_o protestant_a faith_n till_o luther_n teach_v it_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v 4._o either_o these_o suppose_a protestant_n before_o luther_n profess_v their_o faith_n or_o not_o if_o they_o profess_v it_o than_o they_o be_v not_o invisible_a 10.10_o rom._n 10.10_o if_o they_o profess_v it_o not_o than_o they_o be_v not_o predestinate_a for_o with_o our_o heart_n say_v s._n paul_n we_o believe_v unto_o justice_n and_o with_o our_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v to_o salvation_n 5._o it_o be_v at_o least_o requisite_a that_o the_o predestinate_a shall_v not_o deny_v their_o faith_n if_o they_o will_v not_o confess_v it_o or_o else_o they_o can_v be_v predestinate_a but_o all_o the_o suppose_a invisible_a protestant_n before_o luther_n deny_v their_o faith_n by_o profess_v popery_n as_o have_v be_v show_v 11.19_o 1._o cor._n 11.19_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o be_v predestinate_a last_o heresy_n and_o persecution_n make_v the_o predestinate_a more_o conspicuous_a heresy_n say_v s._n paul_n must_v be_v that_o these_o who_o be_v approve_v be_v make_v manifest_a among_o you_o who_o be_v more_o approve_v before_o god_n than_o the_o predestinate_a who_o be_v make_v more_o manifest_a before_o man_n than_o they_o especial_o when_o heresy_n &_o persecution_n do_v arise_v for_o then_o by_o their_o close_a adhere_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o their_o profession_n of_o it_o whereas_o other_o either_o through_o error_n or_o fear_n fall_v from_o it_o they_o be_v render_v more_o conspicuous_a as_o the_o scripture_n show_v and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o make_v hide_v &_o invisible_a as_o the_o puritan_n do_v allege_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v invisible_a in_o the_o predestinate_a more_o than_o in_o other_o that_o upon_o the_o contrary_a when_o that_o may_v happen_v in_o other_o either_o by_o error_n infirmity_n or_o fear_v of_o persecution_n than_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v be_v most_o manifest_a in_o the_o predestinate_a vincent_n aug._n epist_n 48._o ad_fw-la vincent_n and_o be_v principal_o conserve_v in_o they_o for_o then_o as_o s._n augustin_n speak_v in_o suis_fw-la firmissimis_fw-la eminet_fw-la she_o shine_v in_o she_o most_o steadfast_a member_n predestination_n indeed_o be_v invisible_a and_o so_o be_v reprobation_n but_o the_o predestinate_a be_v as_o visible_a as_o the_o reprobate_n yea_o eccles_n mel._n in_o locis_fw-la come_v cap._n de_fw-fr eccles_n they_o be_v the_o most_o eminent_a member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n out_o of_o which_o they_o can_v be_v find_v as_o melanchton_n confess_v let_v we_o not_o dream_n say_v he_o that_o the_o elect_n can_v be_v find_v any_o where_o but_o in_o the_o visible_a society_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o protestant_n have_v not_o visible_a church_n before_o luther_n therefore_o they_o have_v no_o predestinate_a and_o so_o many_o way_n this_o babel_n be_v overturn_v the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a christian_n who_o be_v predestinate_a be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o profess_v their_o faith_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o heathen_a persecution_n which_o be_v more_o cruel_a &_o universal_a than_o any_o that_o have_v happen_v since_o they_o have_v not_o gyges_n ring_n to_o make_v themselves_o invisible_a not_o the_o black_a art_n of_o dissemble_v in_o religion_n as_o the_o invisible_a protestant_n if_o there_o be_v any_o behove_v to_o have_v which_o be_v quality_n very_o unbeseeming_a the_o predestinate_a by_o all_o which_o it_o remain_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o to_o resume_v brief_o the_o argument_n the_o true_a church_n must_v have_v still_o continue_v since_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o time_n but_o the_o protestant_a
have_v have_v her_o gate_n continual_o open_a day_n &_o night_n in_o all_o generation_n to_o receive_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o a_o word_n which_o have_v make_v the_o world_n christian_n this_o be_v the_o church_n which_o alone_o in_o allege_n have_v oppose_v all_o the_o heresy_n which_o do_v arise_v in_o their_o diverse_a age_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n and_o albeit_o they_o all_o have_v shut_v out_o their_o horn_n against_o this_o church_n and_o both_o by_o slight_a &_o may_v have_v endeavour_v to_o destroy_v she_o yet_o she_o alone_o have_v fight_v against_o they_o all_o and_o glorious_o triumph_v over_o they_o all_o this_o be_v the_o church_n which_o have_v hold_v all_o the_o general_a counsel_n which_o have_v condemn_v all_o error_n and_o heresy_n which_o have_v have_v pastor_n and_o people_n profess_v the_o faith_n in_o all_o age_n without_o interruption_n and_o in_o which_o all_o the_o saint_n martyr_n and_o doctor_n have_v live_v these_o thing_n may_v be_v show_v by_o a_o particular_a catalogue_n of_o this_o church_n chief_a pastor_n council_n nation_n convert_v and_o public_a professor_n in_o every_o age_n if_o it_o be_v not_o too_o longsome_a and_o beside_o it_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o it_o be_v not_o here_o necessary_a especial_o see_v the_o lutheran_n centurist_n who_o have_v rake_v together_o all_o they_o can_v both_o for_o themselves_o and_o against_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o can_v show_v the_o succession_n and_o continuance_n of_o no_o other_o but_o only_o of_o this_o church_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v clear_a because_o this_o church_n and_o she_o alone_o have_v so_o clear_o this_o succession_n that_o no_o other_o church_n which_o carry_v the_o name_n of_o christian_a can_v so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o have_v it_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o probability_n for_o it_o be_v evident_o certain_a that_o all_o other_o church_n which_o be_v separate_v from_o this_o church_n be_v once_o of_o her_o faith_n &_o communion_n and_o go_v undeniable_o out_o of_o she_o and_o therefore_o they_o can_v be_v so_o ancient_a as_o she_o and_o consequent_o they_o have_v not_o always_o have_v a_o continue_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o if_o they_o pretend_v it_o they_o will_v be_v most_o ridiculous_a make_v a_o evident_a lie_n against_o sense_n therefore_o the_o protestant_n wise_o pretend_v no_o such_o thing_n yea_o their_o whole_a reformation_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o contrary_a pretext_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v fall_v into_o desolation_n gross_a error_n heresy_n and_o idolatry_n which_o be_v in-indeed_n to_o pretend_v that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n have_v fail_v and_o that_o they_o be_v now_o send_v to_o set_v she_o up_o again_o by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v see_v that_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n and_o she_o alone_o have_v have_v a_o continue_a succession_n from_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n and_o that_o so_o clear_o that_o no_o other_o church_n can_v pretend_v to_o have_v it_o this_o same_o truth_n be_v testify_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o their_o time_n s._n hierom_n 〈◊〉_d say_v above_o that_o he_o will_v bring_v a_o clear_a declaration_n of_o his_o mind_n that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o have_v still_o endure_v to_o wit_n the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n which_o he_o esteem'_v so_o much_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o he_o affirm_v those_o who_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o she_o to_o belong_v not_o to_o christ_n but_o to_o antichrist_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v to_o s._n damasus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o fisher_n and_o with_o the_o disciple_n of_o the_o cross_n i_o speak_v ay_o damas_n hior_n epist_n ad_fw-la damas_n follow_v none_o chief_a but_o christ_n hold_v the_o fellowship_n of_o communion_n with_o thy_o holiness_n that_o be_v with_o peter_n chair_n upon_o that_o rock_n i_o know_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v whosoever_o shall_v eat_v the_o lamb_n without_o that_o house_n be_v a_o profane_a person_n etc._n etc._n he_o that_o gather_v not_o with_o thou_o scatter_v that_o be_v say_v he_o who_o be_v not_o christ_n be_v anti-christs_n this_o old_a doctrine_n be_v far_o different_a from_o the_o presbyterian_o new_a opinion_n s._n cyprian_n say_v pr●tator_fw-la cyp._n tract_n de_fw-fr simplicitate_fw-la pr●tator_fw-la who_o leave_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n upon_o who_o the_o church_n be_v build_v do_v he_o think_v to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v s._n augustin_n the_o most_o glorious_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n show_v this_o same_o truth_n for_o after_o he_o have_v speak_v much_o of_o the_o sincere_a wisdom_n great_a holiness_n and_o fruit_n of_o piety_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o great_a authority_n which_o god_n have_v confer_v on_o she_o he_o subjoin_v these_o remarkable_a word_n to_o his_o friend_n honoratus_n 17._o aug._n de_fw-fr utilite_fw-la crede_fw-la c._n 17._o see_v therefore_o we_o see_v so_o great_a help_n and_o assistance_n from_o god_n shall_v we_o make_v any_o doubt_n or_o question_n at_o all_o of_o retiri_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o that_o church_n which_o to_o the_o confession_n of_o mankind_n from_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a by_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n have_v obtain_v the_o sovereignty_n &_o principal_a authority_n heretic_n in_o vain_a bark_n round_o about_o it_o be_v condemn_v partly_o by_o the_o gravity_n of_o counsel_n partly_o also_o by_o the_o majesty_n &_o splendour_n of_o miracle_n unto_o which_o not_o to_o grant_v the_o chief_a place_n be_v either_o indeed_o a_o extreme_a impiety_n or_o a_o very_a rash_a and_o dangerous_a arrogancy_n thus_o he_o here_o we_o see_v what_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v this_o continue_a succession_n and_o the_o same_o be_v no_o less_o evident_a to_o this_o day_n in_o the_o scripture_n we_o read_v the_o prophecy_n and_o christ_n promise_n of_o his_o church_n and_o in_o this_o church_n alone_o we_o see_v no_o less_o clear_o the_o performance_n what_o the_o scripture_n have_v foretell_v 149._o aug._n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la eccl._n c._n 8._o &_o in_o ps_n 149._o here_o with_o joy_n as_o s._n augustin_n speak_v we_o may_v see_v fulfil_v the_o church_n before_o be_v only_o read_v in_o book_n and_o now_o it_o be_v see_v in_o nation_n by_o all_o which_o authority_n &_o evidence_n both_o the_o mayor_n and_o the_o minor_a of_o the_o argument_n propose_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v to_o be_v manifest_a truth_n to_o wit_n that_o that_o be_v only_o the_o true_a church_n which_o have_v have_v a_o continue_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o this_o time_n and_o that_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n and_o she_o alone_o have_v have_v a_o continue_a succession_n from_o which_o the_o conclusion_n follow_v clear_o therefore_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n you_o see_v this_o reason_n be_v neither_o new_a nor_o obscure_a for_o it_o be_v use_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n as_o a_o most_o clear_a short_a and_o convince_a way_n whereby_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v know_v if_o it_o be_v so_o easy_a &_o strong_a then_o it_o be_v no_o less_o but_o rather_o more_o evident_a &_o forcible_a now_o if_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n for_o 3._o or_o 4._o hundred_o year_n and_o of_o 30._o or_o 40._o roman_n bishop_n be_v esteem_v so_o strong_a by_o the_o father_n to_o prove_v the_o true_a church_n how_o much_o more_o forcible_a be_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n for_o above_o 1600._o year_n &_o above_o 2._o hundred_o bishop_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a to_o prove_v the_o same_o truth_n nothing_o can_v be_v say_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o confirmation_n of_o this_o truth_n which_o may_v not_o as_o just_o be_v say_v now_o and_o nothing_o can_v be_v pretend_v now_o by_o the_o present_a enemy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n against_o it_o which_o may_v not_o have_v be_v as_o just_o pretend_v by_o her_o ancient_a enemy_n the_o old_a heretic_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o way_n to_o shun_v the_o force_n of_o this_o demonstration_n but_o either_o by_o affirm_v that_o the_o true_a church_n have_v perish_v which_o be_v detestable_a blasphemy_n or_o by_o say_v she_o become_v invisible_a which_o we_o have_v show_v above_o to_o be_v a_o gross_a falsehood_n and_o desperate_a folly_n this_o whole_a matter_n may_v be_v further_o illustrate_v and_o confirm_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n then_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n must_v still_o endure_v or_o have_v a_o continue_a succession_n of_o people_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n now_o it_o be_v no_o less_o clear_a &_o it_o
doctrine_n christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n teach_v and_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o her_o constant_a tread_v this_o way_n have_v still_o hold_v the_o same_o true_a doctrine_n which_o she_o first_o receive_v and_o consequent_o have_v never_o change_v her_o doctrine_n nor_o bring_v in_o corruption_n as_o the_o minister_n do_v caluminate_v and_o therefore_o their_o pretend_a reformation_n have_v no_o other_o ground_n but_o this_o calumny_n be_v a_o groundless_a imagination_n and_o a_o destruction_n of_o christ_n true_a doctrine_n but_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o whole_a matter_n may_v yet_o more_o full_o appear_v i_o will_v show_v you_o brief_o that_o this_o constant_a testimony_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a &_o infallible_a way_n to_o attayn_v unto_o the_o certain_a knowledge_n &_o possession_n of_o our_o saviour_n true_a doctrine_n that_o it_o be_v also_o most_o easy_a &_o universal_a for_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n that_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o primitive_a church_n do_v follow_v it_o and_o that_o all_o error_n &_o heresy_n have_v be_v clear_o confute_v by_o it_o we_o have_v already_o show_v that_o this_o testimony_n be_v a_o sure_a &_o infallible_a mean_n now_o that_o it_o be_v only_o sure_a &_o infallible_a 5._o aug._n count_v ep_v fond_a c._n 5._o be_v show_v for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o it_o will_v be_v the_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n pretend_v but_o that_o can_v be_v 1._o because_o we_o can_v believe_v the_o scripture_n without_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o s._n augustin_n clear_o avouch_v 2._o albeit_o we_o can_v know_v it_o without_o that_o testimony_n yet_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o can_v know_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n especial_o since_o the_o scripture_n itself_o say_v 2.15_o 2._o thessaly_n 2.15_o hold_v fast_o the_o tradition_n three_o &_o principal_o albeit_o the_o scripture_n contain_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n yet_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v assure_o by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o without_o which_o i_o have_v not_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n yea_o i_o may_v corrupt_v the_o scripture_n or_o follow_v those_o who_o corrupt_v it_o as_o s._n peter_n show_v many_o do_v unto_o their_o own_o perdition_n here_o many_o if_o not_o all_o protestant_n be_v perplex_v to_o show_v how_o by_o the_o scripture_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o may_v be_v have_v some_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o that_o every_o man_n may_v easy_o understand_v they_o other_o think_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o so_o clear_a but_o a_o interpreter_n be_v necessary_a but_o they_o be_v divyde_v in_o assign_v this_o interpreter_n some_o say_v the_o scripture_n in_o one_o place_n expound_v itself_o in_o another_o other_o assign_v the_o private_a spirit_n and_o last_o of_o all_o some_o assign_n for_o a_o interpreter_n every_o man_n natural_a reason_n but_o all_o these_o be_v false_a &_o frivolous_a pretence_n for_o first_o they_o can_v never_o show_v what_o these_o necessary_a point_n be_v beside_o this_o be_v a_o open_a confession_n that_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o can_v know_v assure_o our_o saviour_n doctrine_n in_o these_o point_n which_o they_o call_v not_o necessary_a then_o be_v not_o the_o true_a belief_n of_o the_o sacrament_n necessary_a for_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o we_o see_v what_o contrary_a gloss_n the_o lutheran_n &_o calvinist_n make_v on_o our_o saviour_n clear_a word_n last_o if_o there_o need_v no_o interpreter_n for_o thing_n necessary_a every_o one_o although_o unlearned_a who_o can_v but_o read_v may_v pick_v out_o what_o be_v necessary_a which_o trouble_v the_o most_o learned_a head_n among_o they_o to_o find_v out_o and_o these_o who_o can_v not_o read_v behove_v to_o pin_v their_o implicit_a faith_n at_o at_o other_o man_n sleeve_n now_o what_o confusion_n will_v this_o make_v what_o uncertainty_n will_v there_o be_v in_o this_o case_n of_o our_o saviour_n doctrine_n and_o how_o contrary_a be_v these_o thing_n to_o truth_n and_o experience_n to_o protestant_n principle_n &_o practice_n so_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o by_o the_o scripture_n alone_o we_o can_v come_v to_o the_o sure_a and_o infallible_a knowledge_n of_o our_o saviour_n doctrine_n neither_o can_v we_o attayn_v to_o it_o by_o the_o scripture_n assist_v by_o any_o interpreter_n which_o protestant_n assign_v for_o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o scripture_n expound_v itself_o it_o be_v obscure_a in_o many_o place_n which_o be_v not_o interpret_v by_o other_o more_o plain_a as_o may_v appear_v beside_o other_o reason_n by_o the_o protestant_n dissenssion_n in_o many_o point_n the_o conference_n of_o place_n study_n and_o the_o like_a which_o some_o require_v to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o scripture_n be_v but_o humane_a help_n subject_a to_o error_n and_o not_o infallible_a then_o for_o the_o private_a spirit_n it_o can_v give_v we_o as_o little_a assurance_n of_o the_o sense_n as_o it_o can_v of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o see_v what_o contrariety_n be_v among_o those_o who_o all_o equal_o lie_v claim_v to_o it_o neither_o be_v the_o last_o interpreter_n to_o wit_n every_o man_n reason_n assign_a by_o m._n chilingworth_n the_o last_o peaceable_a refiner_n of_o the_o english_a church_n any_o white_a better_o but_o rather_o worse_a for_o beside_o that_o this_o opinion_n make_v humane_a reason_n &_o not_o the_o divine_a authority_n the_o main_a ground_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o dangerous_a error_n it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o bring_v man_n unto_o the_o sure_a knowledge_n of_o what_o our_o saviour_n teach_v that_o it_o profess_v no_o more_o but_o a_o moral_a certainty_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a religion_n and_o leave_v all_o particular_a doctrine_n to_o be_v pick_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o man_n particular_a reason_n and_o so_o diverse_a man_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o their_o reason_n collect_v from_o the_o scripture_n opposite_a doctrine_n for_o what_o some_o think_v reasonable_a &_o accept_v other_o esteem_v unreasonable_a and_o reject_v as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o socinian_o who_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n principal_o upon_o this_o ground_n because_o it_o choke_v their_o reason_n as_o the_o calvinist_n also_o chief_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n deny_v the_o real_a presence_n so_o that_o this_o interpreter_n bring_v as_o great_a uncertainty_n to_o know_v our_o saviour_n doctrine_n as_o any_o other_o and_o therefore_o it_o remain_v evident_a that_o the_o scripture_n even_o assist_v by_o any_o interpreter_n which_o protestant_n can_v assign_v &_o much_o more_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v not_o a_o sure_a &_o infallible_a mean_n for_o this_o end_n and_o consequent_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a &_o infallible_a mean_n but_o here_o i_o do_v inquire_v of_o the_o catholic_a if_o the_o scripture_n be_v as_o clear_v every_o where_o as_o s._n augustin_n affirm_v they_o be_v concern_v the_o church_n where_o he_o say_v they_o need_v no_o interpreter_n may_v they_o not_o then_o give_v we_o undoubted_a assurance_n of_o our_o saviour_n doctrine_n to_o which_o he_o answer_v that_o although_o the_o scripture_n be_v never_o so_o clear_a and_o as_o evident_a in_o every_o sentence_n as_o word_n can_v be_v write_v yet_o because_o these_o word_n may_v be_v diverse_o understand_v &_o take_v indifferent_a sense_n they_o can_v be_v so_o sure_a &_o infallible_a away_o to_o certify_v we_o what_o be_v our_o saviour_n doctrine_n as_o the_o live_a word_n &_o testimony_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o receive_v the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o the_o sense_n together_o with_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o she_o have_v constant_o transmit_v unto_o posterity_n this_o be_v evident_a in_o a_o very_a principal_a point_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n to_o wit_n the_o holy_a sacrament_n what_o word_n can_v be_v more_o clear_a than_o these_o of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o you_o &c_n &c_n and_o yet_o upon_o these_o clear_a word_n there_o be_v reckon_v about_o two_o hundred_o diverse_a interpretation_n since_o protestant_n arise_v how_o then_o shall_v a_o man_n among_o such_o variety_n of_o sense_n come_v unto_o the_o true_a sense_n &_o be_v sure_a that_o he_o have_v attain_v unto_o it_o in_o which_o only_a christ_n true_a doctrine_n consist_v therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o this_o case_n that_o the_o write_a word_n can_v do_v it_o and_o this_o only_a the_o church_n can_v perform_v which_o have_v conserve_v both_o the_o letter_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o corruption_n if_o then_o the_o scripture_n although_o they_o be_v write_v in_o most_o clear_a word_n can_v certify_v we_o full_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o our_o saviour_n doctrine_n
augustin_n say_v god_n who_o be_v good_a will_v not_o permit_v evil_a unless_o he_o be_v omnipotent_a can_v also_o do_v good_a of_o evil_n the_o arausican_n council_n say_v 25._o council_n arausican_n c._n 25._o we_o do_v not_o only_o not_o believe_v that_o some_o be_v predestinate_a unto_o evil_n by_o the_o divine_a power_n but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o who_o believe_v so_o great_a a_o wickedness_n we_o accurse_v they_o with_o all_o detestation_n the_o same_o holiness_n may_v be_v show_v of_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v freewill_n and_o the_o possibility_n of_o keep_v the_o commandment_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n of_o justification_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o all_o tend_v to_o holiness_n to_o the_o exaltation_n of_o god_n goodness_n to_o the_o kill_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o advancement_n of_o piety_n &_o of_o all_o good_a work_n as_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v show_v of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o particular_o s._n augustin_n who_o say_v true_o in_o the_o church_n of_o her_o communion_n 8._o aug._n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 8._o nothing_o filthy_a and_o wicked_a be_v propose_v to_o be_v see_v or_o follow_v where_o either_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o true_a god_n be_v explain_v or_o his_o miracle_n relate_v or_o his_o gift_n praise_v or_o his_o benefit_n desire_v beside_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v many_o holy_a house_n dedicate_v and_o consecrate_v to_o god_n service_n holy_a altar_n ornament_n holy_a vessel_n holy_a solemn_a worship_n &_o service_n with_o many_o holy_a rite_n &_o ceremony_n manifest_v the_o majesty_n &_o magnificence_n of_o god_n &_o breed_v respect_n &_o reverence_n in_o man_n and_o in_o a_o word_n this_o church_n militant_a here_o on_o earth_n be_v a_o true_a representation_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a in_o heaven_n still_o adore_v praise_v and_o magnify_v god_n therefore_o holiness_n of_o doctrine_n belong_v rather_o to_o this_o catholic_a church_n than_o to_o the_o protestant_n then_o for_o holiness_n of_o life_n i_o never_o know_v any_o judicious_a protestant_n but_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o catholic_n have_v too_o much_o the_o better_a of_o they_o luther_n the_o first_o apostle_n profess_v that_o whilst_o he_o live_v among_o the_o religious_a of_o s._n augustins_n order_n he_o observe_v chastity_n galat_n luth._o in_o cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la galat_n obedience_n and_o poverty_n that_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n with_o a_o single_a heart_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n fear_v the_o last_o judgement_n etc._n etc._n but_o after_o his_o fall_n from_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o change_v not_o only_o miserable_o his_o faith_n but_o also_o his_o life_n for_o thus_o he_o proclaim_v his_o own_o shame_n 878._o luth._o tom_n 5._o wit_n ser_n de_fw-fr matrim_n f._n 119._o et_fw-la tom_n 1._o epis_fw-la fol._n 334._o zuingl_n tom_fw-mi 2._o in_o resp_n ad_fw-la confess_v lutheri_fw-la f._n 878._o as_o it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n to_o be_v no_o man_n so_o it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n to_o be_v without_o a_o woman_n i_o be_o burn_v with_o the_o great_a flamme_n of_o my_o untamed_a lust_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o make_v himself_o more_o infamous_a he_o have_v vow_v his_o chastity_n to_o god_n marry_v a_o profess_a nun_n name_v katherine_n bear_v who_o have_v make_v the_o like_a vow_n he_o be_v charge_v also_o by_o his_o fellow_n protestant_n with_o arrogancy_n insolency_n &_o intolerable_a pride_n which_o he_o exercise_v against_o person_n of_o great_a quality_n as_o against_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o and_z henry_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o england_n his_o bitter_a rail_n his_o foul_a and_o filthy_a expression_n have_v breed_v such_o a_o stench_n in_o all_o his_o writing_n that_o they_o purchase_v to_o he_o the_o title_n of_o propheta_fw-la stercorarius_n or_o the_o dunghill_n prophet_n 72._o shlus_n in_o theo._n calvin_n lib._n 2._o fol._n 72._o these_o quality_n be_v very_o far_o different_a from_o saint_n virtue_n concern_v calvin_n it_o be_v affirm_v by_o conradus_n shlusselburg_n a_o famous_a lutheran_n that_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o sodomy_n and_o other_o abominable_a vice_n for_o which_o he_o be_v brand_v on_o the_o shoulder_n by_o the_o magistrate_n of_o noyon_n with_o a_o hot_a iron_n that_o he_o be_v strike_v also_o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n with_o herod_n disease_n and_o that_o he_o die_v in_o despair_n curse_v and_o blaspheme_v no_o less_o vice_n also_o be_v lay_v to_o beza_n his_o charge_n who_o do_v celebrate_v his_o own_o shame_n and_o filthy_a lust_n with_o most_o lascivious_a epigram_n all_o which_o be_v not_o alleadgeance_n of_o catholic_n but_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n against_o themselves_o neither_o be_v these_o reformer_n common_o even_o by_o protestant_n esteem_v saint_n as_o for_o the_o common_a multitude_n which_o follow_v the_o reformer_n luther_n himself_o confess_v that_o the_o world_n be_v become_v seven_o time_n worse_o adventus_n luth._o in_o postill_a sup_n euang._n domin_n pae_fw-la adventus_n than_o it_o be_v before_o in_o the_o papacy_n yea_o it_o be_v general_o observe_v that_o catholic_n who_o become_v protestant_n change_v their_o life_n into_o worse_a and_o albeit_o the_o presbyterian_o during_o the_o late_a trouble_n do_v usurp_v to_o themselves_o very_o ridiculous_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n yet_o both_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o protestant_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n they_o be_v very_o far_o from_o deserve_v that_o title_n for_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v the_o old_a protestant_n avarice_n pride_n tyranny_n cruelty_n impudent_a rail_n sedition_n perjury_n and_o many_o such_o other_o vice_n be_v the_o presbyterian_o great_a virtue_n and_o who_o be_v most_o exorbitant_a in_o these_o enormity_n be_v their_o great_a saint_n as_o they_o instance_n in_o some_o chief_a apostle_n of_o the_o covenant_n in_o who_o they_o affirm_v these_o vice_n to_o be_v palpable_o evident_a neither_o have_v the_o presbyterian_o any_o better_a opinion_n of_o the_o old_a protestant_n who_o they_o call_v malignant_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o excommunication_n thunder_v out_o against_o the_o bishop_n at_o the_o assembly_n of_o glasgow_n for_o very_o horrible_a crime_n and_o albeit_o the_o bishop_n at_o least_o some_o of_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o these_o crime_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o wise_a man_n even_o among_o those_o who_o love_v they_o most_o that_o think_v any_o of_o they_o a_o saint_n or_o eminent_a for_o holiness_n neither_o can_v the_o presbyterian_o be_v saint_n even_o in_o their_o own_o principle_n unless_o they_o will_v make_v their_o life_n not_o only_o better_a than_o their_o belief_n but_o also_o contrary_a to_o it_o for_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o commandment_n be_v impossible_a to_o be_v keep_v even_o with_o god_n grace_n how_o can_v they_o pretend_v to_o keep_v they_o and_o if_o they_o keep_v they_o not_o how_o can_v they_o pretend_v to_o be_v saint_n these_o be_v poor_a saint_n who_o break_v every_o day_n god_n commandment_n and_o much_o more_o who_o commit_v a_o mortal_a sin_n in_o all_o their_o action_n as_o the_o presbyterian_o common_o teach_v their_o action_n also_o which_o need_v not_o to_o be_v here_o recount_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v better_o believe_v than_o their_o word_n show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o saint_n a_o late_a author_n who_o have_v occasion_n to_o know_v well_o both_o sort_n of_o protestant_n give_v this_o verdict_n of_o they_o 192._o lose_a sheep_n p._n 192._o among_o the_o legal_a protestant_n there_o be_v many_o store_v with_o moral_a goodness_n but_o the_o devotion_n and_o zeal_n be_v among_o the_o puritan_n but_o it_o have_v eat_v up_o almost_o all_o moral_a honesty_n among_o they_o so_o the_o quality_n which_o be_v too_o evident_a and_o sensible_a in_o the_o presbyterian_o even_o of_o the_o great_a estimation_n show_v clear_o that_o they_o fall_v so_o far_o short_a of_o saint_n perfection_n that_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o moral_a virtue_n neither_o do_v god_n ever_o testify_v either_o the_o holiness_n of_o any_o of_o their_o life_n or_o of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o any_o miracle_n upon_o the_o other_o part_n i_o find_v the_o life_n of_o roman_a catholic_n especial_o of_o those_o who_o be_v converter_n of_o nation_n and_o foundator_n of_o religious_a order_n 17._o calvin_n instit_fw-la c._n 10._o par_fw-fr 17._o to_o be_v high_o extol_v to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o more_o ancient_a saint_n s._n bernard_n who_o all_o the_o world_n know_v to_o have_v be_v most_o addict_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o roman_a faith_n be_v call_v &_o esteem_v a_o saint_n by_o calvin_n and_o by_o diverse_a other_o protestant_n the_o holiness_n of_o s._n dominick_n pro●_n cent._n magd._a cent_n 13._o col_fw-fr 11._o 79._o hacluite_o 2._o parte_fw-la 2._o volume_n p_o 81._o luther_n count_v anabaptistas_n breir_o pro●_n s._n francis_n
unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o in_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o of_o christ_n kingdom_n 16.19_o luke_n 1.33_o mat._n 16.19_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o his_o church_n these_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o clear_a for_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n that_o s._n augustin_n have_v produce_v they_o against_o the_o donatist_n for_o the_o same_o purpose_n affirm_v 11._o aug._n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la eccl._n c._n 11._o no_o man_n how_o blunt_a so_o ever_o he_o be_v and_o slow_a of_o heart_n can_v say_v i_o do_v not_o understand_v they_o that_o none_o but_o heretic_n with_o headstrong_a frowardness_n and_o blind_a fury_n can_v bark_v against_o they_o and_o that_o no_o excuse_n be_v leave_v for_o those_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o because_o they_o contradict_v christ_n clear_a word_n the_o next_o thing_n then_o that_o we_o be_v to_o do_v be_v to_o see_v to_o what_o company_n of_o christian_n whither_o to_o protestant_n or_o to_o those_o christian_n who_o keep_v communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n this_o property_n of_o universality_n by_o which_o the_o true_a church_n be_v so_o clear_o describe_v do_v best_a agree_v we_o need_v not_o make_v great_a search_n in_o this_o matter_n for_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o time_n before_o luther_n the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o much_o catholic_a in_o regard_n of_o protestant_n that_o there_o be_v no_o little_a company_n yea_o nor_o one_o person_n at_o all_o of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n to_o be_v see_v or_o find_v to_o contest_v with_o she_o for_o this_o glorious_a title_n of_o catholic_a whereas_o from_o luther_n upward_o in_o every_o generation_n she_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o most_o famous_a testimony_n history_n record_n &_o monument_n in_o the_o world_n to_o have_v be_v always_o catholic_n that_o be_v to_o have_v be_v a_o most_o ample_a society_n keep_v the_o communion_n of_o nation_n and_o to_o have_v be_v most_o eminent_a above_o all_o other_o religion_n sect_n and_o heresy_n that_o go_v out_o from_o she_o which_o be_v condemn_v by_o this_o church_n be_v as_o unprofitable_a bough_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o vine_n and_o so_o remain_v where_o they_o fall_v in_o petty_a corner_n of_o the_o world_n do_v soon_o wither_v and_o decay_v again_o if_o we_o will_v make_v now_o the_o comparison_n between_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a sea_n and_o the_o protestant_n church_n since_o luther_n arise_v we_o shall_v find_v the_o last_o come_v very_o short_a of_o the_o other_o for_o universality_n and_o that_o for_o the_o same_o very_a reason_n which_o s._n augustin_n bring_v against_o the_o donatist_n 3._o aug._n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccl_n c._n 3._o these_o sect_n say_v he_o be_v not_o find_v in_o many_o nation_n where_o this_o to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v and_o this_o which_o be_v every_o where_o be_v find_v also_o even_o where_o these_o sect_n be_v so_o it_o may_v be_v say_v protestant_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o many_o nation_n where_o the_o catholic_a religion_n be_v profess_v and_o catholic_n may_v be_v find_v where_o ever_o protestant_n be_v for_o all_o the_o diverse_a sort_n of_o protestant_n be_v comprise_v within_o europe_n and_o possess_v only_o the_o northern_a part_n thereof_o there_o be_v some_o most_o famous_a &_o large_a kingdom_n &_o province_n even_o within_o europe_n where_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v or_o find_v as_o in_o all_o spain_n italy_n sicily_n and_o in_o other_o they_o be_v but_o scant_o sow_v as_o in_o france_n poland_n germany_n where_o they_o be_v not_o a_o handful_n to_o the_o catholic_n and_o in_o these_o northern_a place_n which_o they_o possess_v out_o of_o which_o they_o banish_v by_o force_n the_o public_a exercise_v of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o still_o persecute_v the_o professor_n of_o it_o there_o be_v not_o deficient_a catholic_n who_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o their_o religion_n have_v alway'_v profess_v their_o faith_n but_o in_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o catholic_a religion_n do_v wonderful_o flourish_v the_o name_n of_o protestant_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o know_v for_o the_o catholic_a religion_n be_v not_o only_o public_o profess_v in_o the_o most_o famous_a kingdom_n and_o province_n of_o europe_n but_o also_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o africa_n asia_n and_o america_n and_o albeit_o in_o diverse_a country_n the_o public_a profession_n be_v heretical_a mahometical_a or_o heathnih_n yet_o even_o there_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n have_v father_n and_o child_n profess_v her_o faith_n and_o what_o she_o lose_v by_o the_o fall_n away_o of_o protestant_n in_o europe_n she_o have_v gain_v with_o much_o increase_n by_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n indies_n &_o now_o of_o late_a in_o the_o great_a kingdom_n of_o china_n where_o many_o thousand_o have_v embrace_v the_o faith_n if_o then_o the_o society_n of_o christian_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n remain_v still_o catholic_a notwithstanding_o that_o the_o protestant_n have_v fall_v away_o from_o she_o and_o albeit_o they_o will_v muster_v together_o all_o their_o force_n against_o she_o how_o much_o more_o be_v she_o catholic_n in_o regard_n of_o protestant_n if_o they_o be_v take_v a_o part_n by_o their_o diverse_a sect_n &_o scatter_a troop_n as_o in_o all_o reason_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v for_o none_o shall_v be_v esteem_v of_o one_o religion_n but_o these_o who_o be_v of_o one_o communion_n and_o therefore_o since_o universality_n do_v necessary_o include_v unity_n no_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v further_a universal_a than_o her_o communion_n be_v spread_v which_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v so_o little_a a_o way_n that_o every_o one_o of_o those_o protestant_a church_n especial_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o roman_a catholic_n will_v deserve_v rather_o the_o title_n of_o particular_a then_o of_o universal_a moreover_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v observe_v that_o as_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n have_v ever_o have_v the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n catholic_a so_o she_o alone_o have_v ever_o possess_v the_o glorious_a title_n of_o catholic_a whereof_o heretic_n have_v be_v very_o ambitious_a but_o can_v never_o obtain_v it_o s._n augustin_n do_v esteem_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a so_o plain_a a_o evidence_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 4._o aug._n count_v epist_n fund_z c._n 4._o that_o he_o say_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_a hold_v i_o which_o not_o without_o cause_n among_o so_o many_o heresy_n that_o church_n alone_o have_v so_o obtain_v that_o although_o all_o heretic_n will_v have_v themselves_o call_v catholic_n yet_o when_o a_o stranger_n inquire_v any_o of_o they_o where_o the_o catholic_n do_v assemble_v no_o heretic_n be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o show_v he_o his_o own_o meeting_n place_n again_o he_o say_v 6._o idem_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la relig_n c._n 6._o we_o must_v hold_v the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v call_v catholic_a both_o by_o she_o own_o and_o by_o stranger_n this_o name_n of_o catholic_a the_o true_a church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n to_o make_v she_o be_v know_v from_o all_o heretical_a congregation_n which_o she_o have_v ever_o carry_v as_o a_o badge_n of_o truth_n &_o a_o title_n of_o great_a honour_n s._n cyril_n expound_v the_o apostle_n creed_n say_v 15._o cyril_n hierosol_n catech._n 15._o for_o this_o end_n thy_o faith_n have_v give_v to_o thou_o this_o article_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n that_o thou_o may_v avoid_v the_o pollute_a conventicle_n of_o heretic_n and_o a_o little_a after_o when_o thou_o come_v into_o a_o town_n inquire_v not_o simple_o where_o the_o temple_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v for_o heretic_n also_o call_v their_o den_n temple_n neither_o ask_v simple_o where_o the_o church_n be_v but_o ask_v where_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o that_o be_v the_o proper_a name_n of_o this_o holy_a church_n upon_o the_o other_o part_n as_o no_o heresy_n can_v ever_o be_v universal_a for_o time_n or_o place_n for_o he_o who_o have_v prescribe_v bound_n to_o the_o sea_n have_v also_o ordain_v that_o no_o heresy_n can_v cover_v the_o earth_n so_o by_o the_o divine_a providence_n they_o can_v never_o obtain_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a but_o be_v ever_o denominate_v from_o their_o author_n as_o arian_n pelagian_o lutheran_n calvinist_n or_o from_o some_o accident_n as_o protestant_n for_o protest_v against_o the_o emperor_n edict_n luciferianos_fw-la hierom._n cont_n luciferianos_fw-la which_o sort_v of_o name_n s._n hierom_n affirm_v to_o be_v
and_o eternal_a salvation_n here_o in_o this_o house_n of_o faith_n be_v find_v the_o the_o true_a catholic_a &_o invariable_a faith_n of_o which_o s._n augustin_n true_o say_v that_o no_o riches_n apost_n aug._n serm_n 1._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apost_n no_o treasure_n no_o honour_n no_o substance_n of_o this_o world_n be_v comparable_a unto_o it_o therefore_o in_o end_n i_o will_v offer_v up_o my_o thanksgiving_n unto_o god_n in_o the_o word_n of_o that_o glorious_a doctor_n for_o the_o same_o benefit_n true_o o_o lord_n 33._o aug._n soliloq_fw-la c._n 33._o thou_o be_v my_o god_n who_o have_v draw_v i_o out_o of_o darkness_n and_o out_o of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n and_o thou_o have_v call_v i_o into_o thy_o admirable_a light_n and_o behold_v i_o see_v thanks_o be_v give_v to_o thou_o o_o thou_o who_o be_v the_o illuminator_fw-la of_o my_o soul_n i_o look_v back_o and_o see_v the_o darkness_n wherein_o i_o have_v be_v and_o that_o profound_a black_a pit_n wherein_o i_o have_v lyen_fw-we and_o i_o be_v sore_o afraid_a and_o say_v woe_n wo_n be_v to_o that_o darkness_n wherein_o i_o lay_v wo_n wo_n be_v to_o that_o blindness_n wherein_o i_o be_v not_o able_a to_o see_v the_o light_n of_o heaven_n wo_n woe_n to_o that_o former_a ignorance_n of_o i_o when_o i_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o thou_o o_o lord_n but_o i_o give_v thou_o thanks_o o_o my_o illuminator_fw-la and_o deliverer_n because_o thou_o have_v illuminate_v i_o and_o i_o have_v know_v thou_o yet_o still_o be_o i_o come_v too_o late_o to_o thou_o o_o thou_o ancient_a truth_n too_o late_o be_o i_o come_v to_o know_v thou_o o_o thou_o eternal_a truth_n and_o because_o i_o can_v praise_v thou_o sufficient_o i_o humble_o desire_v the_o bless_a virgin_n &_o all_o the_o angel_n &_o saint_n of_o heaven_n to_o bliss_n and_o magnify_v thy_o glorious_a name_n and_o to_o offer_v up_o their_o holy_a prayer_n for_o i_o that_o as_o by_o thy_o grace_n i_o have_v acquire_v the_o true_a faith_n so_o i_o may_v also_o attayn_v unto_o sincere_a piety_n and_o so_o may_v have_v the_o happiness_n to_o praise_v thou_o in_o their_o holy_a society_n for_o all_o eternity_n amen_n finis_fw-la a_o little_o touchstone_n of_o the_o scottish_a covenant_n be_v desirous_a after_o the_o trial_n of_o presbytery_n to_o take_v a_o serious_a view_n of_o the_o late_a famous_a but_o now_o unfortunat_a scottish_a covenant_n presbytery_n principal_a chartour_n i_o require_v the_o accustom_a assistance_n of_o my_o above_o mention_a catholic_a friend_n which_o he_o willing_o vouchsafe_v to_o i_o whereupon_o we_o have_v diverse_a conference_n and_o he_o be_v also_o please_v to_o write_v some_o paper_n on_o this_o matter_n for_o my_o contentment_n out_o of_o which_o i_o will_v make_v a_o brief_a collection_n of_o some_o principal_a observation_n whereby_o as_o by_o a_o little_a touchstone_n the_o covenant_n which_o glister_v so_o much_o for_o a_o time_n and_o which_o be_v sell_v for_o the_o pure_a gold_n of_o divine_a truth_n may_v be_v see_v to_o be_v nothing_o but_o base_a &_o counterfeit_v mettle_n section_n i._o of_o the_o great_a esteem_n and_o high_a title_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o that_o it_o be_v unjust_o call_v god_n covenant_n the_o respect_n which_o the_o covenanter_n give_v to_o the_o covenant_n be_v so_o great_a that_o perhaps_o it_o may_v seem_v incredible_a unto_o posterity_n for_o they_o esteem_v it_o as_o much_o as_o if_o god_n have_v send_v it_o from_o heaven_n or_o have_v give_v express_a order_n for_o make_v it_o they_o be_v not_o content_a to_o esteem_v it_o so_o much_o themselves_o but_o they_o will_v have_v all_o person_n within_o their_o power_n to_o do_v the_o same_o they_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o man_n simple_a profession_n to_o believe_v it_o but_o they_o enforce_v all_o person_n to_o swear_v and_o subscribe_v it_o yea_o and_o to_o take_v their_o sacrament_n upon_o it_o and_o be_v resolve_v by_o furious_a zeal_n to_o propagate_v it_o by_o force_n throughout_o the_o world_n they_o give_v it_o also_o high_a title_n call_v it_o ordinary_o god_n covenant_n or_o the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o the_o kirk_n of_o scotland_n the_o confession_n of_o faith_n the_o holy_a covenant_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o show_v their_o great_a esteem_n of_o it_o at_o the_o very_a first_o serious_a view_n and_o once_o read_v over_o of_o the_o covenant_n we_o present_o see_v that_o it_o do_v not_o deserve_v these_o high_a title_n and_o especial_o of_o god_n covenant_n because_o it_o contain_v some_o most_o gross_a and_o palpable_a lie_n of_o which_o we_o observe_v three_o most_o obvious_a the_o first_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o very_a first_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o begin_v thus_o we_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o we_o underwritten_a protest_v that_o after_o long_a and_o due_a examination_n of_o our_o own_o conscience_n in_o matter_n of_o true_a &_o false_a religion_n etc._n etc._n where_o they_o profess_v to_o have_v use_v long_o &_o due_a examination_n of_o their_o conscience_n before_o they_o swear_v and_o subscribe_v the_o covenant_n now_o this_o be_v a_o falsehood_n so_o manifest_a that_o man_n need_v not_o to_o examine_v their_o consciensce_n but_o only_o to_o recollect_v their_o sense_n and_o consider_v what_o their_o eye_n see_v do_v to_o discover_v it_o for_o when_o the_o covenant_n be_v subscrive_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o trouble_n anno_fw-la 1638._o in_o the_o grayfrier_n church_n of_o edinburgh_n all_o the_o long_a examination_n then_o use_v be_v to_o hear_v it_o once_o read_v over_o accompany_v with_o a_o panegyric_n make_v by_o the_o lord_n lowdon_n and_o a_o prayer_n by_o m._n henderson_n and_o immediate_o thereafter_o all_o almost_o who_o be_v present_a run_v contentious_o to_o it_o throughout_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o country_n the_o minister_n commendation_n of_o it_o be_v make_v to_o serve_v for_o all_o the_o people_n long_a &_o due_a examination_n and_o present_o follow_v their_o subscription_n with_o a_o implicit_a faith_n upon_o the_o minister_n bare_a word_n which_o be_v no_o sure_a ground_n to_o rely_v upon_o the_o puritan_n run_v to_o it_o every_o where_o with_o little_a knowledge_n and_o furious_a zeal_n that_o they_o may_v pull_v down_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o old_a protestant_n be_v awake_v by_o their_o false_a alarm_n do_v swear_v and_o subscribe_v it_o inconfiderat_o that_o they_o may_v oppose_v the_o entrance_n of_o popery_n which_o they_o be_v make_v believe_v to_o be_v at_o the_o door_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a even_o to_o sense_n that_o few_o of_o the_o covenanter_n use_v any_o diligence_n most_o of_o they_o use_v none_o at_o all_o and_o none_o of_o they_o use_v long_o and_o due_a examination_n of_o their_o conscience_n but_o their_o subscription_n and_o oath_n go_v before_o their_o knowledge_n and_o their_o knowledge_n before_o due_a trial_n and_o diligence_n whereof_o this_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o as_o yet_o after_o 19_o year_n agitation_n few_o of_o their_o chief_a head_n know_v all_o the_o point_v abjure_v in_o the_o covenant_n as_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la work_v of_o supererogation_n station_n and_o the_o like_a therefore_o the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v manifest_o false_a the_o second_o gross_a untruth_n be_v a_o little_a after_o the_o middle_a of_o the_o covenant_n in_o these_o word_n and_o see_v many_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o satan_n and_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n to_o promise_v swear_v &_o subscribe_v and_o for_o a_o time_n use_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o kirk_n deceitful_o against_o their_o own_o conscience_n mind_v thereby_o first_o under_o the_o external_a cloak_n of_o religion_n to_o corrupt_v and_o subvert_v secret_o god_n true_a religion_n within_o the_o kirk_n and_o afterward_o when_o time_n may_v serve_v to_o become_v open_a enemy_n and_o persecutor_n of_o the_o same_o under_o vain_a hope_n of_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n devise_v against_o god_n word_n to_o his_o great_a confusion_n and_o to_o their_o double_a condemnation_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n etc._n etc._n here_o say_v the_o catholic_a be_v link_v together_o diverse_a lie_n and_o not_o only_o lie_v but_o calumny_n and_o both_o so_o evident_o false_a &_o impudent_a that_o the_o father_n of_o lie_n if_o he_o have_v any_o shame_n may_v be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o false_a and_o malicious_a then_o to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n stir_v up_o catholic_n to_o swear_v and_o subscrybe_n the_o protestant_n &_o to_o abjure_v the_o catholic_a religion_n against_o their_o conscience_n that_o he_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o use_v the_o protestant_n sacrament_n and_o that_o of_o purpose_n to_o subvert_v their_o religion_n under_o hope_n of_o his_o dispensation_n first_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o constant_o teach_v with_o s._n paul_n that_o no_o evil_n be_v to_o be_v do_v
8._o rom._n 3._o v._n 8._o that_o good_a may_v come_v of_o it_o and_o therefore_o much_o less_o be_v the_o great_a of_o evil_n to_o be_v do_v such_o as_o be_v the_o renounce_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o swear_v of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n against_o the_o light_n of_o a_o man_n conscience_n second_o she_o condemn_v the_o helchesit_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n 31._o euseb_n lib_n 6._o cap._n 31._o as_o heretic_n for_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o christian_n to_o deny_v christ_n external_o in_o the_o time_n of_o torment_n &_o persecution_n three_o the_o pope_n of_o who_o the_o puritan_n think_v no_o sin_n to_o lie_v be_v so_o far_o from_o stir_v up_o catholic_n to_o do_v the_o foresaid_a abomination_n that_o they_o earnest_o dehort_v they_o from_o approach_v to_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o such_o impiety_n which_o to_o p●sse_v by_o other_o instance_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o breviat_fw-la of_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o direct_v to_o the_o english_a catholic_n in_o october_n 1606._o where_o he_o say_v we_o have_v understand_v that_o you_o be_v compel_v by_o the_o threaten_n of_o most_o grievous_a pain_n to_o go_v unto_o the_o temple_n of_o heretic_n to_o frequent_v their_o meeting_n to_o be_v present_a at_o their_o sermon_n true_o we_o undoubted_o believe_v that_o those_o who_o with_o so_o great_a constancy_n and_o courage_n have_v suffer_v most_o fierce_a persecution_n and_o almost_o infinite_a misery_n will_v never_o trespass_v so_o as_o to_o be_v defile_v with_o the_o society_n of_o the_o desertor_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n nevertheless_o we_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o zeal_n of_o our_o pastoral_a charge_n and_o out_o of_o the_o fatherly_a care_n we_o have_v of_o the_o salvation_n of_o your_o soul_n be_v force_v to_o admonish_v and_o earnest_o beseech_v you_o that_o by_o no_o mean_n you_o will_v go_v unto_o the_o temple_n of_o heretic_n or_o hear_v their_o sermon_n or_o communicate_v with_o they_o in_o rite_n lest_o you_o incur_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o you_o to_o do_v these_o thing_n without_o the_o damage_n of_o the_o divin_n worship_n and_o of_o your_o own_o salvation_n if_o the_o pope_n dehort_v so_o earnest_o the_o catholic_n from_o go_v to_o the_o heretic_n temple_n how_o much_o more_o do_v he_o dehort_v they_o from_o abiur_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o from_o receive_v the_o puritan_n sacrament_n if_o the_o pope_n only_o connive_v at_o such_o action_n it_o will_v be_v a_o lie_n and_o calumny_n great_a enough_o to_o say_v he_o stir_v up_o catholic_n to_o do_v they_o but_o it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a lie_n and_o calumny_n to_o say_v he_o stir_v up_o man_n to_o do_v such_o abomination_n when_o he_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o the_o contrary_n neither_o can_v the_o covenanter_n ever_o show_v that_o any_o pope_n do_v otherwise_o since_o ever_o the_o protestant_a religion_n begin_v the_o catholic_n believe_v that_o god_n have_v such_o a_o care_n of_o his_o church_n that_o it_o need_v not_o by_o perjury_n dissimulation_n or_o any_o false_a way_n to_o be_v advance_v and_o they_o know_v also_o that_o all_o heretical_a church_n need_v not_o by_o such_o unjust_a mean_n to_o be_v by_o they_o subvert_v for_o by_o their_o own_o division_n they_o be_v sufficient_a to_o subvert_v themselves_o as_o long_a experience_n have_v show_v last_o it_o be_v false_a that_o these_o catholic_n who_o against_o their_o conscience_n renounce_v their_o religion_n do_v it_o upon_o hope_n of_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n for_o all_o catholic_n know_v that_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o himself_o profess_v can_v dispense_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v intrinsical_o evil_a and_o against_o the_o eternal_a law_n of_o god_n as_o that_o action_n be_v in_o the_o high_a degree_n all_o which_o may_v be_v know_v to_o moderate_v protestant's_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o apostate_n catholic_n therefore_o these_o be_v so_o groundless_a lie_n and_o malicious_a calumny_n the_o covenant_n do_v well_o to_o begin_v they_o with_o the_o father_n of_o lie_n for_o thus_o it_o speak_v and_o see_v many_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o satan_n &_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o have_v be_v no_o lie_n if_o the_o minister_n have_v be_v yoke_v with_o the_o devil_n in_o that_o work_n for_o they_o have_v concur_v oftentimes_o with_o he_o to_o draw_v and_o force_v diverse_a catholic_n to_o renounce_v their_o faith_n against_o their_o conscience_n as_o have_v be_v know_v by_o many_o late_a experience_n since_o the_o covenant_n begin_v but_o it_o be_v strange_a to_o see_v famous_a protestant_n yea_o and_o the_o very_a same_o accuser_n guilty_a of_o the_o same_o crime_n which_o they_o false_o lie_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o other_o which_o may_v be_v show_v by_o their_o own_o monument_n who_o be_v esteem_v a_o more_o famous_a protestant_n than_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o foundress_n of_o the_o late_a english_a church_n and_o yet_o she_o be_v tax_v by_o m._n knox_n for_o feign_v herself_o to_o have_v be_v a_o papist_n for_o bow_v to_o idolatry_n 226_o knox_n chron._n pag._n 226_o and_o go_v to_o mass_n all_o the_o time_n of_o her_o sister_n queen_n mary_n reign_n it_o be_v know_v also_o how_o short_o after_o her_o sister_n death_n she_o subvert_v all_o that_o in_o she_o lay_v the_o catholic_a religion_n albeit_o she_o swear_v to_o maintain_v it_o at_o her_o coronation_n who_o give_v her_o dispensation_n to_o use_v such_o dissimulation_n in_o religion_n sure_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n but_o rather_o she_o as_o head_n of_o she_o own_o church_n which_o be_v now_o also_o subvert_v do_v dispense_v with_o herself_o it_o be_v yet_o fresh_a in_o all_o man_n memory_n how_o many_o of_o the_o puritan_n do_v swear_v obedience_n to_o their_o bishop_n and_o conformity_n to_o the_o late_a english_a church_n order_n and_o yet_o when_o time_n serve_v they_o subvert_v both_o who_o give_v they_o dispensation_n for_o such_o hypocrisy_n and_o perjury_n that_o be_v one_o of_o their_o rare_a privilege_n that_o they_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o by_o more_o than_o papal_a power_n can_v dispense_v with_o themselves_o as_o becan_n show_v in_o a_o special_a treatise_n of_o their_o privilege_n the_o three_o gross_a untruth_n of_o the_o covenant_n follow_v in_o these_o word_n we_o therefore_o willing_a to_o take_v away_o all_o suspicion_n of_o hypocrisy_n and_o of_o such_o double_a deal_n with_o god_n and_o his_o kirk_n protest_v and_o call_v the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n to_o witness_v that_o our_o mind_n and_o heart_n do_v full_o agree_v with_o this_o our_o confession_n oath_n and_o subscription_n so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o move_v for_o any_o worldly_a respect_n but_o be_v persuade_v only_o in_o our_o conscience_n etc._n etc._n as_o they_o the_o foundation_n be_v false_a so_o be_v this_o fabric_n which_o be_v raise_v on_o it_o for_o the_o most_o rigid_a covenanter_n know_v that_o many_o thousand_o protestant_n be_v make_v to_o put_v their_o hand_n to_o the_o covenant_n who_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o it_o and_o when_o they_o can_v show_v both_o their_o heart_n &_o hand_n against_o it_o and_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v move_v without_o worldly_a respect_n that_o for_o these_o only_a they_o be_v induce_v to_o take_v the_o covenant_n and_o so_o soon_o as_o these_o fail_v they_o abandon_v it_o by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o covenant_n which_o contain_v so_o many_o gross_a lie_n and_o calumny_n against_o very_a sense_n and_o experience_n can_v be_v the_o covenant_n of_o god_n who_o love_v truth_n and_o hate_v lie_n section_n ii_o that_o the_o covenant_n be_v not_o a_o confession_n but_o a_o denial_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o covenant_n carry_v this_o title_n in_o print_n the_o national_a covenant_n or_o confession_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o appear_v very_o soon_o to_o we_o not_o to_o deserve_v that_o title_n but_o rather_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v call_v a_o confossion_n or_o denial_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o it_o deny_v not_o simple_o but_o with_o many_o horrible_a execration_n and_o blasphemy_n all_o heresy_n be_v of_o a_o malignant_a nature_n consist_v in_o denial_n of_o some_o point_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o there_o be_v some_o which_o deny_v few_o and_o other_o more_o point_n of_o it_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n some_o heresy_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o one_o word_n only_o against_o the_o faith_n but_o the_o covenant_n and_o presbyterian_a religion_n deny_v almost_o all_o the_o point_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n for_o they_o run_v through_o heaven_n &_o earth_n the_o church_n triumphant_a and_o militant_a they_o leave_v neither_o god_n nor_o man_n the_o angel_n nor_o the_o saint_n the_o live_n nor_o the_o dead_a untouched_a but_o they_o rob_v every_o one_o
pretend_v universality_n when_o you_o say_v that_o your_o faith_n be_v believe_v receive_v and_o defend_v by_o many_o notable_a kirk_n and_o realm_n but_o chief_o by_o the_o kirk_n of_o scotland_n next_o you_o lie_v claim_v to_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o antiquity_n when_o you_o say_v that_o it_o have_v be_v of_o a_o long_a time_n open_o profess_v such_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n that_o enemy_n to_o it_o be_v sometime_o enforce_v to_o make_v use_n or_o rather_o a_o show_n of_o it_o but_o to_o speak_v first_o of_o the_o universality_n of_o your_o faith_n where_o be_v all_o these_o many_o notable_a realm_n and_o kirk_n which_o you_o affirm_v do_v profess_v your_o religion_n in_o europe_n no_o such_o kingdom_n can_v be_v find_v for_o swedland_n &_o denmark_n be_v know_v to_o be_v lutherian_o who_o have_v neither_o unity_n of_o faith_n with_o you_o nor_o communion_n in_o sacrament_n and_o abhor_v the_o very_a name_n of_o calvin_n &_o of_o all_o sacramentary_n the_o realm_n &_o late_a church_n of_o england_n maintain_v the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n abhor_v very_o much_o the_o anarchy_n of_o your_o presbytery_n and_o now_o since_o england_n become_v a_o commonwealth_n it_o hate_v nothing_o more_o than_o the_o soule-tyranny_n as_o it_o be_v common_o call_v there_o of_o your_o presbytery_n the_o other_o famous_a kingdom_n of_o europe_n be_v either_o total_o or_o for_o the_o much_o great_a part_n roman_a catholic_n so_o that_o the_o many_o notable_a realm_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v as_o yet_o invisible_a unless_o you_o will_v count_v all_o those_o to_o be_v of_o your_o religion_n who_o be_v not_o papist_n or_o who_o go_v under_o the_o general_a name_n of_o protestant_n but_o that_o can_v be_v do_v for_o the_o universality_n of_o a_o church_n require_v unity_n in_o faith_n &_o communion_n in_o sacrament_n which_o you_o evident_o want_v with_o a_o great_a part_n of_o protestant_a church_n and_o therefore_o know_v that_o you_o want_v this_o unity_n you_o wise_o pretend_v that_o this_o faith_n which_o you_o so_o much_o praise_n be_v chief_o profess_v by_o the_o kirk_n of_o scotland_n for_o every_o one_o of_o you_o pretend_v to_o be_v chief_a and_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o another_o then_o you_o come_v as_o little_a speed_n of_o your_o antiquity_n for_o all_o the_o long_a time_n that_o your_o faith_n be_v profess_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o your_o reformation_n to_o the_o first_o make_v of_o the_o covenant_n be_v but_o about_o 20._o year_n and_o as_o yet_o to_o this_o day_n it_o have_v not_o past_o the_o bound_n of_o one_o age._n if_o you_o have_v the_o universality_n &_o antiquity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n how_o will_v you_o glory_v when_o you_o make_v such_o a_o stir_n with_o your_o fewness_n and_o novelty_n for_o your_o one_o kingdom_n and_o your_o one_o hundred_o year_n in_o which_o your_o religion_n have_v be_v profess_v we_o can_v show_v you_o the_o same_o kingdom_n profess_v the_o catholic_a religion_n above_o 14._o hundred_o year_n and_o all_o the_o famous_a christian_a kingdom_n and_o country_n of_o the_o world_n make_v the_o same_o profession_n even_o to_o the_o first_o time_n of_o their_o conversion_n from_o infidelity_n to_o christianity_n and_o for_o your_o one_o king_n mention_v in_o your_o covenant_n which_o he_o take_v in_o his_o young_a year_n disprove_a it_o when_o he_o become_v more_o ripe_a as_o appear_v in_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n we_o can_v show_v you_o 80._o king_n of_o the_o same_o nation_n diverse_a of_o which_o be_v glorious_a saint_n in_o heaven_n who_o live_v and_o dye_v in_o the_o catholic_a profession_n to_o who_o we_o may_v add_v all_o the_o famous_a christian_a king_n &_o emperor_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o albeit_o you_o be_v more_o spread_v than_o you_o be_v you_o will_v find_v no_o great_a advantage_n by_o it_o s._n augustin_n compare_v you_o with_o good_a reason_n to_o smoke_n 36._o aug._n serm_n 2._o in_o psal_n 36._o which_o do_v vanish_v so_o much_o the_o soon_o by_o how_o much_o it_o be_v great_a &_o more_o dilate_a abroad_o this_o we_o have_v see_v verify_v in_o our_o time_n for_o the_o late_a church_n of_o england_n intend_v to_o dilate_v herself_o in_o scotland_n do_v short_o thereafter_o vanish_v like_o smoke_n in_o england_n again_o the_o scottish_a presbytery_n endeavour_v with_o great_a zeal_n to_o propagate_v itself_o in_o england_n lose_v soon_o much_o of_o its_o fiery_a force_n in_o scotland_n second_o antiquity_n of_o your_o religion_n will_v tend_v no_o less_o to_o your_o ruin_n for_o as_o s._n hierom_n have_v observe_v all_o heresy_n please_v only_a man_n for_o a_o time_n and_o when_o they_o grow_v old_a they_o wear_v out_o of_o request_n as_o may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o many_o alteration_n of_o religion_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o scotland_n but_o especial_o in_o england_n since_o their_o public_a fall_n from_o the_o catholic_a religion_n then_o for_o act_n of_o parliament_n whereby_o you_o say_v your_o faith_n be_v confirm_v they_o can_v be_v very_o many_o see_v the_o religion_n be_v so_o late_o neither_o can_v they_o give_v great_a confirmation_n to_o a_o religion_n because_o they_o be_v very_o changeable_a we_o see_v one_o protestant_a parliament_n have_v ransact_v the_o king_n supremacy_n which_o many_o protestant_a parliament_n have_v enact_v and_o that_o which_o be_v before_o declare_v heresy_n if_o not_o treason_n to_o deny_v be_v now_o judge_v both_o great_a folly_n and_o treason_n to_o affirm_v the_o true_a religion_n be_v warrant_v by_o a_o high_a authority_n then_o by_o earthly_a court_n but_o the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v make_v and_o unmake_v by_o protestant_a parliament_n the_o last_o point_n here_o propose_v contain_v three_o untruth_n link_v together_o as_o where_o you_o say_v that_o you_o all_o willing_o agree_v in_o all_o point_n all_o the_o horologe_n of_o the_o world_n will_v soon_o agree_v than_o your_o will_n when_o coercive_a power_n be_v now_o take_v out_o of_o your_o hand_n you_o see_v how_o many_o do_v willing_o &_o free_o disagree_v from_o you_o then_o you_o call_v all_o the_o point_n of_o your_o faith_n god_n undoubted_a truth_n which_o they_o can_v be_v beside_o other_o reason_n because_o many_o protestant_n doubt_v of_o diverse_a of_o they_o yea_o they_o think_v they_o undoubted_a falsehood_n and_o beside_o yourselves_o be_v often_o change_v they_o which_o show_v that_o many_o article_n of_o your_o faith_n be_v doubtsome_a and_o your_o faith_n of_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o mere_a opinion_n last_o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o all_o your_o faith_n be_v ground_v only_o upon_o the_o write_a word_n because_o you_o believe_v some_o thing_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o change_n of_o the_o sabbath_n into_o sunday_n the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n and_o which_o be_v more_o you_o believe_v some_o point_n against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n as_o your_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o diverse_a other_o and_o moreover_o you_o lay_v down_o a_o false_a ground_n when_o you_o profess_v to_o believe_v nothing_o 2.15_o 2._o thes_n 2.15_o but_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n whereas_o they_o express_o bid_v you_o hold_v fast_o the_o tradition_n thus_o we_o have_v see_v all_o your_o pretence_n as_o about_o the_o word_n &_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o universality_n &_o antiquity_n of_o your_o faith_n by_o which_o you_o will_v make_v it_o more_o commendable_a to_o be_v false_a &_o groundless_a now_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o bitter_o you_o renounce_v &_o accurse_v the_o catholic_a faith_n section_n iv_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n where_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n nor_o a_o usurper_n as_o the_o covenanter_n do_v calumniate_v after_o the_o former_a preface_n follow_v these_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o therefore_o we_o abhor_v and_o detest_v all_o contrary_a religion_n &_o doctrine_n but_o chief_o all_o kind_n of_o papistry_n in_o general_a and_o particular_a head_n even_o as_o they_o be_v now_o damn_v &_o confute_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o kirk_n of_o scotland_n but_o in_o special_a we_o detest_v and_o refuse_v the_o usurp_v authority_n of_o the_o roman_a anti_n christ_n upon_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o church_n the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n here_o you_o ingenuous_o confess_v yourselves_o to_o have_v one_o quality_n which_o all_o heretic_n have_v ever_o have_v to_o hate_v and_o detest_v most_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o your_o practice_n show_v this_o your_o confession_n to_o be_v true_a for_o albeit_o any_o person_n become_v a_o socinian_n anabaptist_n or_o atheist_n you_o take_v no_o great_a notice_n of_o he_o but_o if_o you_o hear_v of_o any_o that_o be_v become_v a_o papist_n he_o be_v sure_a to_o
it_o as_o the_o same_o bellarmin_n affirm_v against_o calvin_n calumny_n second_o it_o be_v false_o call_v uncertain_a for_o albeit_o the_o catholic_n teach_v that_o no_o man_n without_o divine_a revelation_n can_v know_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o own_o repentance_n by_o the_o certainty_n of_o divine_a faith_n yet_o he_o m●y_v know_v it_o by_o a_o moral_a certainty_n arise_v from_o hope_n in_o the_o divine_a goodness_n according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n paul_n 8.14_o rom._n 8.14_o we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o put_v man_n mind_n in_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n then_o you_o as_o false_o detest_v the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o general_a and_o doubtsome_a for_o albeit_o the_o catholic_n bele_z ve_fw-la not_o only_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o general_a but_o also_o every_o particular_a point_n yet_o you_o call_v their_o faith_n general_a and_o doubtsome_a because_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o which_o god_n never_o reveal_v to_o wit_n your_o special_a faith_n or_o rather_o foolish_a fancy_n by_o which_o every_o one_o of_o you_o believe_v that_o your_o sin_n be_v forgive_v and_o that_o you_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o predestinate_a and_o by_o which_o you_o think_v to_o be_v iustify_v but_o the_o catholic_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v such_o a_o special_a faith_n because_o as_o it_o have_v be_v show_v above_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o mere_a presumption_n and_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o false_a faith_n &_o a_o private_a fancy_n by_o a_o famous_a protestant_n and_o it_o be_v so_o groundless_a &_o doubtsome_a that_o it_o bring_v diverse_a among_o yourselves_o who_o follow_v close_o your_o principle_n into_o great_a perturbation_n of_o mind_n and_o some_o into_o desperation_n all_o which_o as_o also_o the_o truth_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o catholic_n justify_v faith_n may_v be_v see_v handle_v above_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n page_n 183._o and_o some_o few_o page_n follow_v after_o you_o have_v detest_a confession_n and_o blame_v the_o catholic_n for_o require_v so_o much_o contrition_n now_o you_o detest_v satisfaction_n and_o so_o you_o renounce_v all_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n but_o you_o do_v this_o with_o as_o little_a reason_n as_o you_o have_v do_v the_o rest_n for_o by_o satisfaction_n the_o catholic_n understand_v some_o laborious_a work_n such_o as_o prayer_n a_o mesdeed_n fast_v which_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n in_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n due_a to_o our_o sin_n after_o the_o guilt_n and_o eternal_a punishment_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o sacramental_a absolution_n which_o doctrine_n be_v most_o consonant_a to_o the_o scripture_n &_o holy_a father_n that_o temporal_a punishment_n remain_v due_a to_o sin_n after_o the_o eternal_a be_v remit_v be_v most_o clear_a in_o the_o person_n of_o king_n david_n 13._o 2._o king_n ch_n 12._o v._n 13._o who_o after_o he_o have_v gote_v remission_n of_o his_o sin_n from_o god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o nathan_n the_o prophet_n be_v notwithstanding_o punish_v temporal_o with_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n joan._n aug._n tract_n 124._o in_o joan._n this_o truth_n s._n augustin_n do_v testify_v say_v a_o man_n be_v force_v to_o suffer_v even_o after_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v etc._n etc._n punishment_n do_v hold_v a_o man_n temporal_o who_o sin_n hold_v not_o guilty_a unto_o eternal_a damnation_n that_o this_o temporal_a pain_n remain_v after_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n be_v remit_v may_v be_v redeem_v by_o good_a work_n which_o be_v therefore_o call_v satisfaction_n be_v also_o evident_a for_o daniel_n say_v to_o the_o king_n let_v i_o counsel_n thou_o 4._o daniel_n 4._o o_o king_n redeem_v thy_o sin_n with_o alm_n and_o thy_o iniquity_n with_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o poor_a s._n john_n baptist_n say_v do_v fruit_n worthy_a of_o penance_n s._n augustin_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o psalm_n 3.8_o luke_n 3.8_o cleanse_v i_o from_o my_o sin_n desire_v sinner_n to_o say_v with_o david_n no_o my_o lord_n 50._o aug_n in_o psal_n 50._o my_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v unpunished_a it_o shall_v not_o be_v unpunished_a but_o therefore_o i_o will_v not_o that_o thou_o punish_v it_o because_o i_o punish_v my_o own_o sin_n i_o pass_v by_o more_o testimony_n for_o brevity_n sake_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o note_v that_o the_o centurist_n confess_v this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n &_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o may_v be_v see_v centurie_n 3._o col_fw-fr 127._o neither_o be_v it_o any_o wonder_n that_o you_o who_o deny_v all_o good_a work_n be_v so_o great_a enemy_n to_o satisfaction_n or_o work_n of_o austerity_n you_o detest_v next_o the_o pope_n justification_n by_o work_n but_o you_o may_v as_o well_o with_o your_o first_o apostle_n luther_n renounce_v the_o justification_n of_o s._n james_n who_o teach_v the_o same_o in_o express_a term_n say_v do_v you_o see_v that_o by_o work_n 24._o james_n 2._o ch_z v._o 24._o a_o man_n be_v iustify_v and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o but_o enough_o of_o this_o matter_n have_v be_v say_v above_o then_o for_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la which_o you_o abjure_v it_o have_v breed_v some_o of_o your_o minister_n endless_a work_n for_o be_v often_o inquire_v they_o can_v never_o tell_v true_o what_o it_o be_v but_o bring_v diverse_a ridiculous_a &_o oftentimes_o contrary_a gloss_n or_o rather_o guess_n on_o it_o which_o will_v be_v too_o tedious_a here_o to_o insert_v whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a 10._o jude_n v._n 10._o that_o they_o have_v blaspheme_v thing_n as_o s._n jude_n speak_v whereof_o they_o be_v ignorant_a and_o have_v make_v many_o thousand_o do_v the_o same_o what_o the_o catholic_a doctor_n intend_v by_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la have_v be_v above_o show_v pag._n 202._o to_o wit_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n do_v confer_v grace_n by_o the_o work_n wrought_v that_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sacramental_a action_n institute_v by_o christ_n to_o that_o effect_n and_o not_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o minister_n or_o receiver_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a truth_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o explain_v and_o confirm_v at_o more_o length_n this_o be_v a_o better_a work_n wrought_v than_o the_o work_n of_o your_o covenant_n which_o have_v wrought_v much_o mischief_n in_o great_a britain_n you_o be_v not_o content_a to_o renounce_v all_o work_n of_o duty_n which_o be_v command_v by_o deny_v the_o possibility_n of_o keep_v the_o commandment_n unless_o you_o renounce_v also_o work_v of_o more_o perfection_n not_o command_v but_o counsel_v which_o the_o catholic_n call_v work_n of_o supererogation_n that_o there_o be_v such_o work_v most_o laudable_a &_o commendable_a albeit_o you_o detest_v they_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o scripture_n &_o father_n for_o virginity_n be_v not_o a_o command_n but_o a_o counsel_n and_o be_v more_o perfect_a than_o matrimony_n of_o this_o s._n paul_n give_v testimony_n say_v as_o concern_v virgin_n a_o commandment_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o have_v not_o but_o counsel_v i_o give_v as_o have_v obtain_v mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v faithful_a 1._o cor._n 7.25_o where_o he_o also_o show_v that_o he_o who_o mary_n do_v well_o but_o he_o who_o mary_n not_o do_v better_a for_o ●8_o the_o same_o also_o our_o saviour_n show_v say_v that_o there_o be_v eunuch_n who_o have_v geld_v themselves_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n again_o our_o saviour_n show_v another_o counsel_n 19.12_o math._n 19.12_o or_o work_v of_o perfection_n when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o young_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n if_o thou_o will_v be_v perfect_a go_v sell_v the_o thing_n thou_o have_v and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a &_o thou_o shall_v have_v treasure_n in_o heaven_n math._n 19.21_o to_o these_o two_o work_n of_o perfection_n be_v adjoin_v voluntary_a obedience_n as_o christ_n himself_o show_v by_o his_o voluntary_a subjection_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o s._n joseph_n he_o himself_o be_v the_o absolute_a lord_n of_o they_o &_o all_o thing_n s._n luke_n 2.51_o the_o holy_a father_n be_v most_o clear_a for_o this_o doctrine_n s._n chrysostom_n say_v 9_o chrys_n in_o 1._o ad_fw-la cor._n c._n 9_o some_o thing_n christ_n command_v something_n he_o leave_v to_o our_o own_o freewill_n for_o he_o say_v not_o sell_v that_o thou_o have_v but_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v perfect_a sell_v that_o thou_o have_v etc._n etc._n and_o in_o his_o 18_o homily_n of_o penance_n he_o say_v multi_fw-la &_o ipsa_fw-la superant_fw-la mandata_fw-la 30._o aug._n de_fw-fr virginitate_fw-la c._n 30._o many_o go_v beyond_o the_o very_a commandment_n s._n augustin_n also_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o command_n &_o evangelical_n counsel_n affirm_v that_o for_o not_o do_v the_o first_o man_n be_v
last_o section_n be_v sufficient_a where_o the_o scot_n be_v say_v to_o have_v become_v praestantissimi_fw-la omnium_fw-la christiani_n etc._n etc._n which_o have_v fill_v the_o christian_a world_n with_o the_o fame_n of_o their_o piety_n and_o zeal_n for_o propagate_a the_o eternal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o which_o confession_n and_o ancient_a vniform_a religion_n we_o without_o any_o constraint_n of_o man_n but_o mere_o for_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n in_o hope_n of_o eternal_a reward_n though_o with_o imminent_a danger_n of_o temporal_a loss_n do_v most_o 417._o most_o most_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o who_o embrace_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o scotland_n where_o it_o be_v persecute_v do_v it_o willing_o so_o it_o be_v manifest_o know_v that_o many_o be_v constrain_v to_o take_v the_o covenant_n and_o so_o do_v not_o willing_o agree_v to_o it_o see_v above_o ch_n 4._o p._n 26._o and_o sect_n 1._o p._n 417._o willing_o agree_v in_o our_o whole_a hearr_n as_o unto_o god_n fine_a god_n god_n the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v so_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o it_o be_v altogether_o unalterable_a with_o the_o catholic_n but_o this_o protestant_a faith_n can_v be_v undoubted_a truth_n see_v it_o be_v so_o often_o alter_v by_o protestant_n see_v p._n 430._o in_o fine_a unalterable_a truth_n ground_v only_o upon_o his_o tradition_n his_o his_o the_o catholic_n believe_v all_o god_n reveal_v word_n whether_o unwritten_a or_o write_v according_a to_o the_o express_a command_n of_o the_o write_a word_n hold_v the_o tradition_n 2._o thess_n 2.15_o but_o the_o presbyterian_o against_o the_o write_a word_n reject_v all_o tradition_n reveal_v word_n and_o therefore_o we_o renounce_v all_o sect_n and_o heresy_n contrary_a unto_o it_o but_o especial_o the_o presbyterian_a sect_n and_o all_o the_o point_n thereof_o as_o they_o be_v now_o and_o have_v be_v ancient_o condemn_v by_o the_o treatise_n the_o the_o how_o the_o presbyterian_a sect_n albeit_o it_o pretend_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o all_o heretic_n do_v ordinary_o pretend_v be_v notwithstanding_o condemn_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o by_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n which_o be_v of_o far_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o presbyterian_a kirk_n of_o scotland_o may_v be_v see_v almost_o every_o where_o in_o the_o former_a treatise_n word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a catholiqve_n church_n but_o particular_o we_o reject_v the_o unparalleled_a insolency_n of_o that_o calvinistical_a 437._o calvinistical_a calvinistical_a as_o it_o have_v be_v show_v above_o sect_n 4._o p._n 432._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o therefore_o not_o anti_n christ_n so_o also_o all_o who_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o he_o belong_v not_o to_o christ_n but_o to_o anti_n christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v anti_n christian_n so_o s._n hierom_n express_o affirm_v ibid._n p._n 437._o anti-christian_n sect_n upon_o both_o the_o 439._o the_o the_o calvin_n usurp_a ove●_n the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o make_v up_o a_o new_a canon_n never_o know_v before_o and_o he_o usurp_v over_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o by_o reject_v the_o ancient_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o by_o invent_v new_a sense_n according_a to_o his_o private_a fancy_n so_o do_v also_o his_o disciple_n the_o presbyterian_a minister_n so_o do_v likewise_o luther_n most_o gross_o see_v p._n 439._o letter_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n upon_o the_o 440._o the_o the_o calvin_n do_v usurp_v over_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n who_o have_v no_o lawful_a authority_n will_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n to_o judge_v and_o condemn_v she_o to_o prescribe_v his_o own_o fancy_n as_o divine_a rule_n unto_o she_o so_o do_v also_o the_o presbyterian_o see_v p._n 440._o holy_a catholiqve_n church_n upon_o their_o own_o 41._o own_o own_o the_o presbyterian_o in_o scotland_n have_v have_v but_o 4._o prince_n since_o their_o religion_n begin_v and_o they_o have_v undeniable_o usurp_v high_o over_o they_o all_o as_o may_v be_v see_v p._n 440._o and_o 41._o lawful_a prince_n and_o superior_n and_o their_o tyrannize_a over_o the_o 26._o the_o the_o how_o they_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o conscience_n of_o their_o fellow_n subject_n be_v notorious_o know_v and_o may_v be_v see_v chap._n 4._o p._n 26._o conscience_n of_o their_o fellow-subiect_n 455._o fellow-subiect_n fellow-subiect_n these_o who_o under_o pretence_n of_o christian_a liberty_n disobey_v just_a law_n such_o as_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v also_o observe_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n as_o these_o about_o lend_v fast_v the_o single_a life_n of_o church_n man_n &c._n &c._n make_v their_o freedom_n a_o cloak_n of_o malice_n against_o s._n peter_n advice_n 1._o pet._n 2.13_o and_o a_o occasion_n to_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 5.13_o see_v above_o p._n 454._o 455._o all_o their_o licentious_a exemption_n from_o obedience_n to_o just_a law_n under_o pretence_n of_o christian_a liberty_n to_o cloak_v iniqvitie_n and_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o flesh_n their_o destuctive_a doctrine_n against_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o 6._o the_o the_o the_o presbyterian_o destroy_v all_o tradition_n against_o the_o express_a scripture_n see_v above_o p._n 445._o and_o 6._o unwritten_a word_n express_o commend_v by_o the_o write_a word_n 448._o word_n word_n they_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a even_o with_o god_n grace_n to_o keep_v his_o law_n in_o observation_n whereof_o all_o perfection_n substantial_o consist_v and_o so_o indeed_o they_o destroy_v the_o end_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n see_v above_o ch_n 13._o 14._o and_o sect_n 5._o p._n 448._o against_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o perfection_n against_o the_o triple_a 449._o triple_a triple_a they_o destroy_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n as_o king_n by_o spoil_v he_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o church_n for_o many_o age_n they_o destroy_v his_o priestly_a office_n by_o abrogate_a the_o daily_a sacrifice_n and_o his_o prophetical_a by_o deny_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o his_o prophecy_n concern_v his_o church_n continuance_n and_o visibility_n see_v above_o p._n 449._o office_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v king_n priest_z and_o prophet_n which_o be_v a_o manifest_a corruption_n of_o the_o bless_a evangel_n their_o corrupt_a doctrine_n of_o 454._o of_o of_o calvin_n teach_v that_o original_a sin_n still_o remain_v in_o we_o even_o after_o baptism_n and_o that_o it_o defile_v before_o god_n what_o ever_o work_v proceed_v from_o we_o and_o so_o make_v they_o mortal_a sin_n which_o doctrine_n the_o presbyterian_o follow_v as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o with_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n p._n 451._o 454._o original_a sin_n which_o make_v their_o best_a action_n mortal_a sin_n our_o trial._n our_o our_o the_o presbyterian_o grant_v such_o a_o natural_a inhability_n that_o they_o deny_v all_o supernatural_a ability_n in_o man_n to_o keep_v god_n law_n even_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o all_o his_o grace_n which_o be_v a_o most_o dangerous_a corrupt_a doctrine_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 454._o &_o more_o full_o ch_n 13._o 14._o of_o presb._n trial._n supernatural_a ability_n and_o dutiefull_a subjection_n to_o god_n law_n our_o justification_n by_o 157._o by_o by_o they_o make_v justification_n by_o faith_n only_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o reformation_n and_o deny_v justification_n by_o work_n express_o against_o the_o scripture_n james_n 2.124_o and_o the_o holy_a father_n see_v above_o ch_n 14._o p._n 157._o work_n our_o 455._o our_o our_o they_o make_v our_o sanctification_n so_o imperfect_a that_o we_o can_v by_v it_o think_v so_o much_o as_o a_o good_a thought_n or_o do_v any_o thing_n but_o sin_n mortal_o and_o still_o disobey_v god_n commandment_n so_o that_o such_o sanctification_n be_v rather_o profanation_n and_o such_o obedience_n be_v disobedience_n see_v above_o p._n 455._o perfect_n sanctification_n and_o obedience_n through_o christ_n grace_n unto_o the_o law_n the_o trial._n the_o the_o they_o have_v corrupt_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o confer_v grace_n &_o by_o make_v they_o only_a sign_n and_o token_n they_o have_v corrupt_v the_o number_n by_o take_v away_o 5._o sacrament_n and_o the_o use_n by_o abrogate_a both_o private_a baptism_n &_o communion_n beside_o both_o the_o public_a and_o private_a use_n of_o other_o see_v above_o p._n 458._o &_o seq_fw-la and_z before_z ch_z 18._o presb._n trial._n nature_n number_n and_o use_v of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n their_o two_o 194._o two_o two_o by_o deny_v the_o two_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n which_o they_o admit_v to_o confer_v grace_n they_o make_v they_o graceless_a and_o so_o indeed_o bastard_n sacrament_n since_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v institute_v to_o confer_v grace_n above_o p._n 467._o &_o before_o
that_o many_o catholic_n have_v be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o presbyterian_a minister_n for_o fear_n of_o their_o excommunication_n and_o the_o confiscation_n of_o their_o estate_n which_o follow_v thereupon_o to_o swear_v and_o subscribe_v the_o covenant_n against_o the_o light_n of_o their_o conscience_n as_o be_v well_o know_v to_o the_o say_a minister_n which_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 414._o and_o 15._o and_o see_v many_o catholic_n be_v solicitit_v by_o satan_n and_o the_o presbyterian_a minister_n to_o swear_v subscribe_v &_o receive_v their_o sacrament_n against_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o their_o conscience_n for_o iust_o fear_n of_o the_o ministerial_a confiscation_n and_o loss_v of_o their_o estate_n faith_n estate_n estate_n all_o these_o to_o who_o god_n have_v make_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n to_o shine_v aught_o to_o be_v thankful_a for_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n and_o never_o commit_v so_o great_a ingratitude_n as_o to_o abandon_v it_o for_o worldly_a respect_n how_o much_o more_o ought_v they_o to_o abhor_v from_o take_v the_o covenant_n which_o make_v even_o some_o protestant_n heart_n to_o stand_n which_o contain_v so_o many_o gross_a untruth_n as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o &_o which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o denial_n but_o a_o abjuration_n join_v with_o horrible_a blasphemy_n of_o almost_o all_o the_o point_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n we_o solemn_o promise_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n that_o we_o shall_v never_o yield_v unto_o such_o temptation_n nor_o be_v so_o ingrate_a after_o god_n have_v make_v the_o light_n of_o his_o truth_n to_o shine_v unto_o we_o who_o be_v live_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o error_n as_o to_o abandon_v the_o truth_n against_o our_o conscience_n but_o rather_o shall_v continue_v constant_a in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o though_o it_o be_v with_o the_o loss_n of_o our_o life_n and_o estate_n know_v that_o god_n almighty_n be_v power_n full_a and_o hope_v that_o his_o goodness_n shall_v be_v willing_a to_o render_v unto_o we_o a_o hundred_o fold_n and_o life_n everlasting_a to_o which_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n bring_v us._n amen_o the_o presbyterian_a covenant_n or_o confession_n of_o faith_n we_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o we_o underwritten_a protest_v that_o after_o 411._o after_o after_o the_o catholic_n long_o &_o diligent_a search_n may_v appear_v by_o the_o former_a trial_n whereas_o the_o covenanter_n use_v neither_o long_a nor_o due_a examination_n of_o their_o conscience_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o pag._n 411._o long_a &_o due_a examination_n of_o our_o own_o conscience_n in_o matter_n of_o true_a &_o false_a religion_n we_o be_v now_o 425._o now_o now_o catholic_n who_o rely_v upon_o the_o immovable_a pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n to_o wit_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n which_o never_o change_v be_v full_o satisfy_v and_o assure_v of_o the_o truth_n but_o heretic_n who_o quite_o this_o solid_a ground_n and_o follow_v the_o private_a spirit_n which_o be_v very_o inconstant_a let_v they_o pretend_v what_o they_o please_v can_v never_o have_v full_a assurance_n which_o evident_o appear_v by_o their_o continual_a change_n &_o new_a pretend_a light_n see_v above_o pa._n 425._o through_o resolve_v of_o the_o truth_n by_o the_o 424._o the_o the_o christ_n promise_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v remain_v in_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o &_o teach_v she_o all_o truth_n john_n 14.16_o john_n 16.13_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o every_o new_a heretic_n without_o scripture_n appropriat_v this_o spirit_n to_o himself_o &_o against_o scripture_n &_o christ_n clear_a promise_n deny_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v also_o of_o their_o vain_a pretext_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n see_v above_o pag._n 423._o 424._o word_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o believe_v with_o our_o heart_n confess_v with_o our_o mouth_n subscribe_v with_o our_o hand_n and_o constant_o affirm_v before_o god_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o this_o only_o be_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n please_v god_n and_o bring_v salvation_n to_o man_n which_o 5.16.17_o which_o which_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v reveal_v of_o old_a and_o from_o that_o time_n can_v never_o be_v hide_v but_o the_o presbyterian_a faith_n have_v two_o contra●y_a quality_n to_o wit_n it_o be_v now_o reveal_v and_o have_v lyen_fw-we long_o hide_v as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 426._o see_v also_o math._n 5.16.17_o now_o be_v by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n reveal_v to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o bless_a evangel_n and_o receive_v believe_v and_o defend_v by_o 34._o by_o by_o the_o true_a church_n must_v be_v in_o all_o nation_n as_o esay_n foretell_v say_v all_o nation_n shall_v flow_v unto_o it_o esay_n 2.2_o and_o christ_n show_v that_o repentance_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n unto_o all_o nation_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n luke_n 24.47_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o true_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_a as_o be_v disperse_v through_o all_o nation_n as_o she_o be_v also_o catholic_n for_o time_n endure_v in_o all_o age_n but_o heresys_n be_v only_o in_o some_o few_o nation_n or_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o these_o also_o they_o be_v not_o the_o same_o but_o full_a of_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n which_o be_v manifest_o verify_v of_o the_o presbyterian_o &_o protestant_n see_v above_o ch_n 32._o 34._o many_o notable_a kirk_n &_o realm_n but_o chief_o by_o the_o kirk_n of_o scotland_n the_o king_n majesty_n and_o the_o three_o estate_n of_o this_o realm_n as_o god_n hide_v god_n god_n as_o god_n truth_n be_v eternal_a so_o it_o can_v be_v hide_v esay_n 62.6_o but_o the_o presbyterian_o pretend_v eternal_a truth_n have_v be_v too_o long_o hide_v eternal_a truth_n and_o only_a ground_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o more_o particular_o be_v confess_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n establish_v and_o public_o confirm_v by_o sundry_a 430._o sundry_a sundry_a the_o approbation_n of_o all_o general_n counsel_n which_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o which_o do_v never_o revoke_v their_o determination_n by_o which_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v approve_v and_o confirm_v be_v a_o much_o more_o solid_a authority_n to_o confirm_v the_o catholic_a religion_n then_o be_v the_o earthly_a court_n of_o change_a parliament_n to_o establish_v any_o sort_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n we_o know_v by_o experience_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o changeable_a then_o act_v of_o parliament_n see_v pag._n 430._o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o now_o of_o a_o hundred_o a_o a_o the_o scottish_a nation_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n a_fw-mi christi_fw-la 203._o leslaeus_n de_fw-fr reb._n gestis_fw-la scot._n l._n 1._o p._n 114._o which_o be_v above_o 1400._o year_n ago_o during_o which_o time_n it_o remain_v constant_a in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n except_o a_o little_a of_o late_a this_o indeed_o may_v be_v call_v a_o long_a time_n but_o the_o presbyterian_o long_a time_n be_v only_o 20_o year_n as_o may_v be_v know_v by_o calculation_n and_o as_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o a_o hundred_o long_a time_n have_v be_v open_o profess_v by_o the_o hampton-court_n the_o the_o since_o the_o conversion_n of_o king_n donald_n the_o first_o christian_a king_n there_o be_v reckon_v above_o 80._o catholic_a king_n of_o this_o nation_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o our_o history_n whereas_o the_o presbyterian_o have_v only_a one_o king_n to_o wit_n king_n james_n the_o 6._o who_o subscrybed_n their_o covenant_n in_o his_o young_a year_n which_o he_o also_o disprove_v thereafter_o in_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n king_n majesty_n and_o whole_a body_n of_o this_o realm_n both_o in_o burgh_n and_o land_n to_o the_o which_o confession_n and_o form_n of_o religion_n we_o 417._o we_o we_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o who_o embrace_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o scotland_n where_o it_o be_v persecute_v do_v it_o willing_o so_o it_o be_v manifest_o know_v that_o many_o be_v constrain_v to_o take_v the_o covenant_n and_o so_o do_v not_o willing_o agree_v to_o it_o see_v above_o ch_n 4._o p._n 26._o and_o sect_n 1._o p._n 417._o willing_o agree_v as_o unto_o god_n fine_a god_n god_n the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v so_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o it_o be_v altogether_o unalterable_a with_o the_o catholic_n but_o this_o protestant_a faith_n can_v be_v undoubted_a truth_n see_v it_o be_v so_o often_o alter_v by_o protestant_n see_v p._n 430._o in_o fine_a undoubted_a truth_n and_o verity_n ground_v only_o upon_o his_o write_a word_n and_o therefore_o we_o abhor_v and_o detest_v all_o contrary_a religion_n &_o doctrine_n but_o chief_o all_o kind_n of_o papistry_n in_o general_n and_o particular_a head_n even_o as_o they_o be_v now_o damn_v and_o confute_v by_o the_o